Institutes of the Christian Religion, Book
2
INSTITUTES
OF
THE CHRISTIAN RELIGION.
_________
BOOK SECOND.
OF THE KNOWLEDGE OF GOD THE REDEEMER,
IN CHRIST, AS FIRST MANIFESTED
TO THE FATHERS, UNDER THE LAW, AND
THEREAFTER TO US UNDER THE GOSPEL.
ARGUMENT.
The First Part of
the Apostles' Creed--viz. the knowledge of God the Creator, being disposed
of, we now come to the Second Part, which relates to the knowledge of God
as a Redeemer in Christ. The subjects treated of accordingly are, first,
the Occasion of Redemption--viz. Adam's fall; and, secondly, Redemption
itself. The first five chapters are devoted to the former subject, and
the remainder to the latter.
Under the Occasion
of Redemption, the Fall is considered not only in a general way, but also
specially in its effects. Hence the first four chapters treat of original
sin, free will, the corruption of human nature, and the operation of God
in the heart. The fifth chapter contains a refutation of the arguments
usually urged in support of free will.
The subject of
redemption may be reduced to five particular heads:
I. The character
of him in whom salvation for lost man must be sought, Chap. 6.
II. How he was
manifested to the world, namely, in a twofold manner. First, under the
Law. Here the Decalogue is expounded, and some other points relating to
the law discussed, Chap. 7 and 8. Secondly, under the Gospel. Here the
resemblance and difference of the two dispensations are considered, Chap.
9, 10, 11.
III. What kind
of person Christ was, and behaved to be, in order to perform the office
of Mediator--viz. God and man in one person, Chap. 12, 13, 14.
IV. For what
end he was sent into the world by the Father. Here Christ's prophetical,
kingly, and priestly offices are considered, Chap. 15.
V. In what way,
or by what successive steps, Christ fulfilled the office of our Redeemer,
Chap. 16. Here are considered his crucifixion, death, burial, descent to
hell, resurrection, ascension to heaven, and seat at the right hand of
the Father, together with the practical use of the whole doctrine. Chapter
17 contains an answer to the question, Whether Christ is properly said
to have merited the grace of God for us.
INSTITUTES
OF
THE CHRISTIAN RELIGION.
_________
BOOK SECOND.
OF THE KNOWLEDGE OF GOD THE REDEEMER,
IN CHRIST, AS FIRST MANIFESTED TO THE FATHERS,
UNDER THE LAW, AND THEREAFTER TO US UNDER
THE GOSPEL.
CHAPTER 1.
THROUGH THE FALL AND REVOLT OF ADAM,
THE WHOLE HUMAN RACE MADE ACCURSED AND DEGENERATE. OF ORIGINAL SIN.
I. How necessary the knowledge
of ourselves is, its nature, the danger of mistake, its leading parts,
sect. 1, 2, 3. II. The causes of Adam's fearful fall, sect. 4. III. The
effects of the fall extending to Adam's posterity, and all the creatures,
sect. 5, to the end of the Chapter, where the nature, propagation, and
effect of original sin are considered.
Sections.
1. The knowledge of ourselves most necessary.
To use it properly we must be divested of pride, and clothed with true
humility, which will dispose us to consider our fall, and embrace the mercy
of God in Christ.
2. Though there is plausibility in
the sentiment which stimulates us to self-admiration, the only sound sentiment
is that which inclines us to true humbleness of mind. Pretexts for pride.
The miserable vanity of sinful man.
3. Different views taken by carnal
wisdom and by conscience, which appeals to divine justice as its standard.
The knowledge of ourselves, consisting of two parts, the former of which
having already been discussed, the latter is here considered.
4. In considering this latter part,
two points to be considered; 1. How it happened that Adam involved himself
and the whole human race in this dreadful calamity. This the result not
of sensual intemperance, but of infidelity (the source of other heinous
sins), which led to revolt from God, from whom all true happiness must
be derived. An enumeration of the other sins produced by the infidelity
of the first man.
5. The second point to be considered
is, the extent to which the contagious influence of the fall extends. It
extends, 1. To all the creatures, though unoffending; and, 2. To the whole
posterity of Adam. Hence hereditary corruption, or original sin, and the
depravation of a nature which was previously pure and good. This depravation
communicated to the whole posterity of Adam, but not in the way supposed
by the Pelagians and Celestians.
6. Depravation communicated not merely
by imitation, but by propagation. This proved, 1. From the contrast drawn
between Adam and Christ. Confirmation from passages of Scripture; 2 From
the general declaration that we are the children of wrath.
7. Objection, that if Adam's sin
is propagated to his posterity, the soul must be derived by transmission.
Answer. Another objection--viz. that children cannot derive corruption
from pious parents. Answer.
8. Definition of original sin. Two
parts in the definition. Exposition of the latter part. Original sin exposes
us to the wrath of God. It also produces in us the works of the flesh.
Other definitions considered.
9. Exposition of the former part
of the definition--viz. that hereditary depravity extends to all the faculties
of the soul.
10. From the exposition of both parts
of the definition it follows that God is not the author of sin, the whole
human race being corrupted by an inherent viciousness.
11. This, however, is not from nature,
but is an adventitious quality. Accordingly, the dream of the Manichees
as to two principles vanishes.
1. IT was not without reason that the ancient
proverb so strongly recommended to man the knowledge of himself. For if
it is deemed disgraceful to be ignorant of things pertaining to the business
of life, much more disgraceful is self-ignorance, in consequence of which
we miserably deceive ourselves in matters of the highest moment, and so
walk blindfold. But the more useful the precept is, the more careful we
must be not to use it preposterously, as we see certain philosophers have
done. For they, when exhorting man to know himself, state the motive to
be, that he may not be ignorant of his own excellence and dignity. They
wish him to see nothing in himself but what will fill him with vain confidence,
and inflate him with pride. But self-knowledge consists in this, first,
When reflecting on what God gave us at our creation, and still continues
graciously to give, we perceive how great the excellence of our nature
would have been had its integrity remained, and, at the same time, remember
that we have nothing of our own, but depend entirely on God, from whom
we hold at pleasure whatever he has seen it meet to bestow; secondly,
When viewing our miserable condition since Adam's fall, all confidence
and boasting are overthrown, we blush for shame, and feel truly humble.
For as God at first formed us in his own image, that he might elevate our
minds to the pursuit of virtue, and the contemplation of eternal life,
so to prevent us from heartlessly burying those noble qualities which distinguish
us from the lower animals, it is of importance to know that we were endued
with reason and intelligence, in order that we might cultivate a holy and
honourable life, and regard a blessed immortality as our destined aim.
At the same time, it is impossible to think of our primeval dignity without
being immediately reminded of the sad spectacle of our ignominy and corruption,
ever since we fell from our original in the person of our first parent.
In this way, we feel dissatisfied with ourselves, and become truly humble,
while we are inflamed with new desires to seek after God, in whom each
may regain those good qualities of which all are found to be utterly destitute.
2. In examining
ourselves, the search which divine truth enjoins, and the knowledge which
it demands, are such as may indispose us to every thing like confidence
in our own powers, leave us devoid of all means of boasting, and so incline
us to submission. This is the course which we must follow, if we would
attain to the true goal, both in speculation and practice. I am not unaware
how much more plausible the view is, which invites us rather to ponder
on our good qualities, than to contemplate what must overwhelm us with
shame--our miserable destitution and ignominy. There is nothing more acceptable
to the human mind than flattery, and, accordingly, when told that its endowments
are of a high order, it is apt to be excessively credulous. Hence it is
not strange that the greater part of mankind have erred so egregiously
in this matter. Owing to the innate self-love by which all are blinded,
we most willingly persuade ourselves that we do not possess a single quality
which is deserving of hatred; and hence, independent of any countenance
from without, general credit is given to the very foolish idea, that man
is perfectly sufficient of himself for all the purposes of a good and happy
life. If any are disposed to think more modestly, and concede somewhat
to God, that they may not seem to arrogate every thing as their own, still,
in making the division, they apportion matters so, that the chief ground
of confidence and boasting always remains with themselves. Then, if a discourse
is pronounced which flatters the pride spontaneously springing up in man's
inmost heart, nothing seems more delightful. Accordingly, in every age,
he who is most forward in extolling the excellence of human nature, is
received with the loudest applause. But be this heralding of human excellence
what it may, by teaching man to rest in himself, it does nothing more than
fascinate by its sweetness, and, at the same time, so delude as to drown
in perdition all who assent to it. For what avails it to proceed in vain
confidence, to deliberate, resolve, plan, and attempt what we deem pertinent
to the purpose, and, at the very outset, prove deficient and destitute
both of sound intelligence and true virtue, though we still confidently
persist till we rush headlong on destruction? But this is the best that
can happen to those who put confidence in their own powers. Whosoever,
therefore, gives heed to those teachers, who merely employ us in contemplating
our good qualities, so far from making progress in self-knowledge, will
be plunged into the most pernicious ignorance.
3. While revealed
truth concurs with the general consent of mankind in teaching that the
second part of wisdom consists in self-knowledge, they differ greatly as
to the method by which this knowledge is to be acquired. In the judgment
of the flesh man deems his self-knowledge complete, when, with overweening
confidence in his own intelligence and integrity, he takes courage, and
spurs himself on to virtuous deeds, and when, declaring war upon vice,
he uses his utmost endeavour to attain to the honourable and the fair.
But he who tries himself by the standard of divine justice, finds nothing
to inspire him with confidence; and hence, the more thorough his self-examination,
the greater his despondency. Abandoning all dependence on himself, he feels
that he is utterly incapable of duly regulating his conduct. It is not
the will of God, however, that we should forget the primeval dignity which
he bestowed on our first parents--a dignity which may well stimulate us
to the pursuit of goodness and justice. It is impossible for us to think
of our first original, or the end for which we were created, without being
urged to meditate on immortality, and to seek the kingdom of God. But such
meditation, so far from raising our spirits, rather casts them down, and
makes us humble. For what is our original? One from which we have fallen.
What the end of our creation? One from which we have altogether strayed,
so that, weary of our miserable lot, we groan, and groaning sigh for a
dignity now lost. When we say that man should see nothing in himself which
can raise his spirits, our meaning is, that he possesses nothing on which
he can proudly plume himself. Hence, in considering the knowledge which
man ought to have of himself, it seems proper to divide it thus, first,
to consider the end for which he was created, and the qualities--by no
means contemptible qualities--with which he was endued, thus urging him
to meditate on divine worship and the future life; and,
secondly,
to consider his faculties, or rather want of faculties--a want which, when
perceived, will annihilate all his confidence, and cover him with confusion.
The tendency of the former view is to teach him what his duty is, of the
latter, to make him aware how far he is able to perform it. We shall treat
of both in their proper order.
4. As the act
which God punished so severely must have been not a trivial fault, but
a heinous crime, it will be necessary to attend to the peculiar nature
of the sin which produced Adam's fall, and provoked God to inflict such
fearful vengeance on the whole human race. The common idea of sensual intemperance
is childish. The sum and substance of all virtues could not consist in
abstinence from a single fruit amid a general abundance of every delicacy
that could be desired, the earth, with happy fertility, yielding not only
abundance, but also endless variety. We must, therefore, look deeper than
sensual intemperance. The prohibition to touch the tree of the knowledge
of good and evil was a trial of obedience, that Adam, by observing it,
might prove his willing submission to the command of God. For the very
term shows the end of the precept to have been to keep him contented with
his lot, and not allow him arrogantly to aspire beyond it. The promise,
which gave him hope of eternal life as long as he should eat of the tree
of life, and, on the other hand, the fearful denunciation of death the
moment he should taste of the tree of the knowledge of good and evil, were
meant to prove and exercise his faith. Hence it is not difficult to infer
in what way Adam provoked the wrath of God. Augustine, indeed, is not far
from the mark, when he says (in Psal. 19), that pride was the beginning
of all evil, because, had not man's ambition carried him higher than he
was permitted, he might have continued in his first estate. A further definition,
however, must be derived from the kind of temptation which Moses describes.
When, by the subtlety of the devil, the woman faithlessly abandoned the
command of God, her fall obviously had its origin in disobedience. This
Paul confirms, when he says, that, by the disobedience of one man, all
were destroyed. At the same time, it is to be observed, that the first
man revolted against the authority of God, not only in allowing himself
to be ensnared by the wiles of the devil, but also by despising the truth,
and turning aside to lies. Assuredly, when the word of God is despised,
all reverence for Him is gone. His majesty cannot be duly honoured among
us, nor his worship maintained in its integrity, unless we hang as it were
upon his lips. Hence infidelity was at the root of the revolt. From infidelity,
again, sprang ambition and pride, together with ingratitude; because Adam,
by longing for more than was allotted him, manifested contempt for the
great liberality with which God had enriched him. It was surely monstrous
impiety that a son of earth should deem it little to have been made in
the likeness, unless he were also made the equal of God. If the apostasy
by which man withdraws from the authority of his Maker, nay, petulantly
shakes off his allegiance to him, is a foul and execrable crime, it is
in vain to extenuate the sin of Adam. Nor was it simple apostasy. It was
accompanied with foul insult to God, the guilty pair assenting to Satan's
calumnies when he charged God with malice, envy, and falsehood. In fine,
infidelity opened the door to ambition, and ambition was the parent of
rebellion, man casting off the fear of God, and giving free vent to his
lust. Hence, Bernard truly says, that, in the present day, a door of salvation
is opened to us when we receive the gospel with our ears, just as by the
same entrance, when thrown open to Satan, death was admitted. Never would
Adam have dared to show any repugnance to the command of God if he had
not been incredulous as to his word. The strongest curb to keep all his
affections under due restraint, would have been the belief that nothing
was better than to cultivate righteousness by obeying the commands of God,
and that the highest possible felicity was to be loved by him.143
Man, therefore, when carried away by the blasphemies of Satan, did his
very utmost to annihilate the whole glory of God.
5. As Adam's
spiritual life would have consisted in remaining united and bound to his
Maker, so estrangement from him was the death of his soul. Nor is it strange
that he who perverted the whole order of nature in heaven and earth deteriorated
his race by his revolt. "The whole creation groaneth," saith St Paul, "being
made subject to vanity, not willingly," (Rom. 8:20, 22). If the reason
is asked, there cannot be a doubt that creation bears part of the punishment
deserved by man, for whose use all other creatures were made. Therefore,
since through man's fault a curse has extended above and below, over all
the regions of the world, there is nothing unreasonable in its extending
to all his offspring. After the heavenly image in man was effaced, he not
only was himself punished by a withdrawal of the ornaments in which he
had been arrayed--viz. wisdom, virtue, justice, truth, and holiness, and
by the substitution in their place of those dire pests, blindness, impotence,
vanity, impurity, and unrighteousness, but he involved his posterity also,
and plunged them in the same wretchedness. This is the hereditary corruption
to which early Christian writers gave the name of Original Sin, meaning
by the term the depravation of a nature formerly good and pure. The subject
gave rise to much discussion, there being nothing more remote from common
apprehension, than that the fault of one should render all guilty, and
so become a common sin. This seems to be the reason why the oldest doctors
of the church only glance obscurely at the point, or, at least, do not
explain it so clearly as it required. This timidity, however, could not
prevent the rise of a Pelagius with his profane fiction--that Adam sinned
only to his own hurt, but did no hurt to his posterity. Satan, by thus
craftily hiding the disease, tried to render it incurable. But when it
was clearly proved from Scripture that the sin of the first man passed
to all his posterity, recourse was had to the cavil, that it passed by
imitation, and not by propagation. The orthodoxy, therefore, and more especially
Augustine, laboured to show, that we are not corrupted by acquired wickedness,
but bring an innate corruption from the very womb. It was the greatest
impudence to deny this. But no man will wonder at the presumption of the
Pelagians and Celestians, who has learned from the writings of that holy
man how extreme the effrontery of these heretics was. Surely there is no
ambiguity in David's confession, "I was shapen in iniquity; and in sin
did my mother conceive me," (Ps. 51:5). His object in the passage is not
to throw blame on his parents; but the better to commend the goodness of
God towards him, he properly reiterates the confession of impurity from
his very birth. As it is clear, that there was no peculiarity in David's
case, it follows that it is only an instance of the common lot of the whole
human race. All of us, therefore, descending from an impure seed, come
into the world tainted with the contagion of sin. Nay, before we behold
the light of the sun we are in God's sight defiled and polluted. "Who can
bring a clean thing out of an unclean? Not one," says the Book of Job (Job
14:4).
6. We thus see
that the impurity of parents is transmitted to their children, so that
all, without exception, are originally depraved. The commencement of this
depravity will not be found until we ascend to the first parent of all
as the fountain head. We must, therefore, hold it for certain, that, in
regard to human nature, Adam was not merely a progenitor, but, as it were,
a root, and that, accordingly, by his corruption, the whole human race
was deservedly vitiated. This is plain from the contrast which the Apostle
draws between Adam and Christ, "Wherefore, as by one man sin entered into
the world, and death by sin; and so death passed upon all men, for that
all have sinned; even so might grace reign through righteousness unto eternal
life by Jesus Christ our Lord," (Rom. 5:19-21). To what quibble will the
Pelagians here recur? That the sin of Adam was propagated by imitation!
Is the righteousness of Christ then available to us only in so far as it
is an example held forth for our imitation? Can any man tolerate such blasphemy?
But if, out of all controversy, the righteousness of Christ, and thereby
life, is ours by communication, it follows that both of these were lost
in Adam that they might be recovered in Christ, whereas sin and death were
brought in by Adam, that they might be abolished in Christ. There is no
obscurity in the words, "As by one man's disobedience many were made sinners,
so by the obedience of one shall many be made righteous." Accordingly,
the relation subsisting between the two is this, As Adam, by his ruin,
involved and ruined us, so Christ, by his grace, restored us to salvation.
In this clear light of truth I cannot see any need of a longer or more
laborious proof. Thus, too, in the First Epistle to the Corinthians, when
Paul would confirm believers in the confident hope of the resurrection,
he shows that the life is recovered in Christ which was lost in Adam (1
Cor. 15:22). Having already declared that all died in Adam, he now also
openly testifies, that all are imbued with the taint of sin. Condemnation,
indeed, could not reach those who are altogether free from blame. But his
meaning cannot be made clearer than from the other member of the sentence,
in which he shows that the hope of life is restored in Christ. Every one
knows that the only mode in which this is done is, when by a wondrous communication
Christ transfuses into us the power of his own righteousness, as it is
elsewhere said, "The Spirit is life because of righteousness," (1 Cor.
15:22). Therefore, the only explanation which can be given of the expression,
"in Adam all died," is, that he by sinning not only brought disaster and
ruin upon himself, but also plunged our nature into like destruction; and
that not only in one fault, in a matter not pertaining to us, but by the
corruption into which he himself fell, he infected his whole seed. Paul
never could have said that all are "by nature the children of wrath," (Eph.
2:3), if they had not been cursed from the womb. And it is obvious that
the nature there referred to is not nature such as God created, but as
vitiated in Adam; for it would have been most incongruous to make God the
author of death. Adam, therefore, when he corrupted himself, transmitted
the contagion to all his posterity. For a heavenly Judge, even our Saviour
himself, declares that all are by birth vicious and depraved, when he says
that "that which is born of the flesh is fleshy" (John 3:6), and that therefore
the gate of life is closed against all until they have been regenerated.
7. To the understanding
of this subject, there is no necessity for an anxious discussion (which
in no small degree perplexed the ancient doctors), as to whether the soul
of the child comes by transmission from the soul of the parent.144
It should be enough for us to know that Adam was made the depository of
the endowments which God was pleased to bestow on human nature, and that,
therefore, when he lost what he had received, he lost not only for himself
but for us all. Why feel any anxiety about the transmission of the soul,
when we know that the qualities which Adam lost he received for us not
less than for himself, that they were not gifts to a single man, but attributes
of the whole human race? There is nothing absurd, therefore, in the view,
that when he was divested, his nature was left naked and destitute that
he having been defiled by sin, the pollution extends to all his seed. Thus,
from a corrupt root corrupt branches proceeding, transmit their corruption
to the saplings which spring from them. The children being vitiated in
their parent, conveyed the taint to the grandchildren; in other words,
corruption commencing in Adam, is, by perpetual descent, conveyed from
those preceding to those coming after them. The cause of the contagion
is neither in the substance of the flesh nor the soul, but God was pleased
to ordain that those gifts which he had bestowed on the first man, that
man should lose as well for his descendants as for himself. The Pelagian
cavil, as to the improbability of children deriving corruption from pious
parents, whereas, they ought rather to be sanctified by their purity, is
easily refuted. Children come not by spiritual regeneration but carnal
descent.145 Accordingly, as Augustine says, "Both the condemned
unbeliever and the acquitted believer beget offspring not acquitted but
condemned, because the nature which begets is corrupt."146 Moreover,
though godly parents do in some measure contribute to the holiness of their
offspring, this is by the blessing of God; a blessing, however, which does
not prevent the primary and universal curse of the whole race from previously
taking effect. Guilt is from nature, whereas sanctification is from supernatural
grace.
8. But lest the
thing itself of which we speak be unknown or doubtful, it will be proper
to define original sin. (Calvin, in Conc. Trident. 1, Dec. Sess. 5). I
have no intention, however, to discuss all the definitions which different
writers have adopted, but only to adduce the one which seems to me most
accordant with truth. Original sin, then, may be defined a hereditary corruption
and depravity of our nature, extending to all the parts of the soul, which
first makes us obnoxious to the wrath of God, and then produces in us works
which in Scripture are termed works of the flesh. This corruption is repeatedly
designated by Paul by the term sin147 (Gal. 5:19); while the
works which proceed from it, such as adultery, fornication, theft, hatred,
murder, revellings, he terms, in the same way, the fruits of sin, though
in various passages of Scripture, and even by Paul himself, they are also
termed sins. The two things, therefore, are to be distinctly observed--viz.
that being thus perverted and corrupted in all the parts of our nature,
we are, merely on account of such corruption, deservedly condemned by God,
to whom nothing is acceptable but righteousness, innocence, and purity.
This is not liability for another's fault. For when it is said, that the
sin of Adam has made us obnoxious to the justice of God, the meaning is
not, that we, who are in ourselves innocent and blameless, are bearing
his guilt, but that since by his transgression we are all placed under
the curse, he is said to have brought us under obligation.148
Through him, however, not only has punishment been derived, but pollution
instilled, for which punishment is justly due. Hence Augustine, though
he often terms it another's sin (that he may more clearly show how it comes
to us by descent), at the same time asserts that it is each individual's
own sin.149 And the Apostle most distinctly testifies, that
"death passed upon all men, for that all have sinned," (Rom. 5:12); that
is, are involved in original sin, and polluted by its stain. Hence, even
infants bringing their condemnation with them from their mother's womb,
suffer not for another's, but for their own defect. For although they have
not yet produced the fruits of their own unrighteousness, they have the
seed implanted in them. Nay, their whole nature is, as it were, a seed-bed
of sin, and therefore cannot but be odious and abominable to God. Hence
it follows, that it is properly deemed sinful in the sight of God; for
there could be no condemnation without guilt. Next comes the other point--viz.
that this perversity in us never ceases, but constantly produces new fruits,
in other words, those works of the flesh which we formerly described; just
as a lighted furnace sends forth sparks and flames, or a fountain without
ceasing pours out water. Hence, those who have defined original sin as
the want of the original righteousness which we ought to have had, though
they substantially comprehend the whole case, do not significantly enough
express its power and energy. For our nature is not only utterly devoid
of goodness, but so prolific in all kinds of evil, that it can never be
idle. Those who term it concupiscence use a word not very inappropriate,
provided it were added (this, however, many will by no means concede),
that everything which is in man, from the intellect to the will, from the
soul even to the flesh, is defiled and pervaded with this concupiscence;
or, to express it more briefly, that the whole man is in himself nothing
else than concupiscence.
9. I have said,
therefore, that all the parts of the soul were possessed by sin, ever since
Adam revolted from the fountain of righteousness. For not only did the
inferior appetites entice him, but abominable impiety seized upon the very
citadel of the mind, and pride penetrated to his inmost heart (Rom. 7:12;
Book 4, chap. 15, sec. 10-12), so that it is foolish and unmeaning to confine
the corruption thence proceeding to what are called sensual motions, or
to call it an excitement, which allures, excites, and drags the single
part which they call sensuality into sin. Here Peter Lombard has displayed
gross ignorance (Lomb., lib. 2 Dist. 31). When investigating the seat of
corruption, he says it is in the flesh (as Paul declares), not properly,
indeed, but as being more apparent in the flesh. As if Paul had meant that
only a part of the soul, and not the whole nature, was opposed to supernatural
grace. Paul himself leaves no room for doubt, when he says, that corruption
does not dwell in one part only, but that no part is free from its deadly
taint. For, speaking of corrupt nature, he not only condemns the inordinate
nature of the appetites, but, in particular, declares that the understanding
is subjected to blindness, and the heart to depravity (Eph. 4:17, 18).
The third chapter of the Epistle to the Romans is nothing but a description
of original sin; The same thing appears more clearly from the mode of renovation.
For the spirit, which is contrasted with the old man, and the flesh, denotes
not only the grace by which the sensual or inferior part of the soul is
corrected, but includes a complete reformation of all its parts (Eph. 4:23).
And, accordingly, Paul enjoins not only that gross appetites be suppressed,
but that we be renewed in the spirit of our mind (Eph. 4:23), as he elsewhere
tells us to be transformed by the renewing of our mind (Rom. 12:2). Hence
it follows, that that part in which the dignity and excellence of the soul
are most conspicuous, has not only been wounded, but so corrupted, that
mere cure is not sufficient. There must be a new nature. How far sin has
seized both on the mind and heart, we shall shortly see. Here I only wished
briefly to observe, that the whole man, from the crown of the head to the
sole of the foot, is so deluged, as it were, that no part remains exempt
from sin, and, therefore, everything which proceeds from him is imputed
as sin. Thus Paul says, that all carnal thoughts and affections are enmity
against God, and consequently death (Rom. 8:7).
10. Let us have
done, then, with those who dare to inscribe the name of God on their vices,
because we say that men are born vicious. The divine workmanship, which
they ought to look for in the nature of Adam, when still entire and uncorrupted,
they absurdly expect to find in their depravity. The blame of our ruin
rests with our own carnality, not with God, its only cause being our degeneracy
from our original condition. And let no one here glamour that God might
have provided better for our safety by preventing Adam's fall. This objection,
which, from the daring presumption implied in it, is odious to every pious
mind, relates to the mystery of predestination, which will afterwards be
considered in its own place (Tertull. de Præscript., Calvin, Lib.
de Predest). Meanwhile let us remember that our ruin is attributable to
our own depravity, that we may not insinuate a charge against God himself,
the Author of nature. It is true that nature has received a mortal wound,
but there is a great difference between a wound inflicted from without,
and one inherent in our first condition. It is plain that this wound was
inflicted by sin; and, therefore, we have no ground of complaint except
against ourselves. This is carefully taught in Scripture. For the Preacher
says, "Lo, this only have I found, that God made man upright; but they
have sought out many inventions," (Eccl. 7:29). Since man, by the kindness
of God, was made upright, but by his oven infatuation fell away unto vanity,
his destruction is obviously attributable only to himself (Athanas. in
Orat. Cont. Idola).
11. We say, then,
that man is corrupted by a natural viciousness, but not by one which proceeded
from nature. In saying that it proceeded not from nature, we mean that
it was rather an adventitious event which befell man, than a substantial
property assigned to him from the beginning.150 We, however
call it natural to prevent any one from supposing that each individual
contracts it by depraved habit, whereas all receive it by a hereditary
law. And we have authority for so calling it. For, on the same grounds
the apostle says, that we are "by nature the children of wrath," (Eph.
2:3). How could God, who takes pleasure in the meanest of his works be
offended with the noblest of them all? The offence is not with the work
itself, but the corruption of the work. Wherefore, if it is not improper
to say, that, in consequence of the corruption of human nature, man is
naturally hateful to God, it is not improper to say, that he is naturally
vicious and depraved. Hence, in the view of our corrupt nature, Augustine
hesitates not to call those sins natural which necessarily reign in the
flesh wherever the grace of God is wanting. This disposes of the absurd
notion of the Manichees, who, imagining that man was essentially wicked,
went the length of assigning him a different Creator, that they might thus
avoid the appearance of attributing the cause and origin of evil to a righteous
God.
CHAPTER 2.
MAN NOW DEPRIVED OF FREEDOM OF WILL,
AND MISERABLY ENSLAVED.
Having in the first chapter
treated of the fall of man, and the corruption of the human race, it becomes
necessary to inquire, Whether the sons of Adam are deprived of all liberty;
and if any particle of liberty remains, how far its power extends? The
four next chapters are devoted to this question. This second chapter may
be reduced to three general heads: I. The foundation of the whole discussion.
II. The opinions of others on the subject of human freedom, see. 2-9. III.
The true doctrine on the subject, see. 10-27.
Sections.
1. Connection of the previous with
the four following chapters. In order to lay a proper foundation for the
discussion of free will, two obstacles in the way to be removed--viz. sloth
and pride. The basis and sum of the whole discussion. The solid structure
of this basis, and a clear demonstration of it by the argument a majori
ad minus. Also from the inconveniences and absurdities arising from
the obstacle of pride.
2. The second part of the chapter
containing the opinions of others. 1. The opinions of philosophers.
3. The labyrinths of philosophers.
A summary of the opinion common to all the philosophers.
4. The opinions of others continued--viz.
The opinions of the ancient theologians on the subject of free will. These
composed partly of Philosophy and partly of Theology. Hence their falsehood,
extravagance, perplexity, variety, and contradiction. Too great fondness
for philosophy in the Church has obscured the knowledge of God and of ourselves.
The better to explain the opinions of philosophers, a definition of Free
Will given. Wide difference between this definition and these opinions.
5. Certain things annexed to Free
Will by the ancient theologians, especially the Schoolmen. Many kinds of
Free Will according to them.
6. Puzzles of scholastic divines
in the explanation of this question.
7. The conclusion that so trivial
a matter ought not to be so much magnified. Objection of those who have
a fondness for new terms in the Church. Objection answered.
8. Another answer. The Fathers, and
especially Augustine, while retaining the term Free Will, yet condemned
the doctrine of the heretics on the subject, as destroying the grace of
God.
9. The language of the ancient writers
on the subject of Free Will is, with the exception of that of Augustine,
almost unintelligible. Still they set little or no value on human virtue,
and ascribe the praise of all goodness to the Holy Spirit.
10. The last part of the chapter,
containing a simple statement of the true doctrine. The fundamental principle
is, that man first begins to profit in the knowledge of himself when he
becomes sensible of his ruined condition. This confirmed, 1. by passages
of Scripture.
11. Confirmed, 2. by the testimony
of ancient theologians.
12. The foundation being laid, to
show how far the power both of the intellect and will now extends, it is
maintained in general, and in conformity with the views of Augustine and
the Schoolmen, that the natural endowments of man are corrupted, and the
supernatural almost entirely lost. A separate consideration of the powers
of the Intellect and the Will. Some general considerations, 1. The intellect
possesses some powers of perception. Still it labours under a twofold defect.
13. Man's intelligence extends both
to things terrestrial and celestial. The power of the intellect in regard
to the knowledge of things terrestrial. First, with regard to matters of
civil polity.
14. The power of the intellect, secondly,
with regard to the arts. Particular gifts in this respect conferred on
individuals, and attesting the grace of God.
15. The rise of this knowledge of
things terrestrial, first, that we may see how human nature, notwithstanding
of its fall, is still adorned by God with excellent endowments.
16. Use of this knowledge continued.
Secondly, that we may see that these endowments bestowed on individuals
are intended for the common benefit of mankind. They are sometimes conferred
even on the wicked.
17. Some portion of human nature
still left. This, whatever be the amount of it, should be ascribed entirely
to the divine indulgence. Reason of this. Examples.
18. Second part of the discussion,
namely, that which relates to the power of the human intellect in regard
to things celestial. These reducible to three heads, namely, divine knowledge,
adoption, and will. The blindness of man in regard to these proved and
thus tested by a simile.
19. Proved, moreover, by passages
of Scripture, showing, 1. That the sons of Adam are endued with some light,
but not enough to enable them to comprehend God. Reasons.
20. Adoption not from nature, but
from our heavenly Father, being sealed in the elect by the Spirit of regeneration.
Obvious from many passages of Scripture, that, previous to regeneration,
the human intellect is altogether unable to comprehend the things relating
to regeneration. This fully proved. First argument. Second argument. Third
argument.
21. Fourth argument. Scripture ascribes
the glory of our adoption and salvation to God only. The human intellect
blind as to heavenly things until it is illuminated. Disposal of a heretical
objection.
22. Human intellect ignorant of the
true knowledge of the divine law. This proved by the testimony of an Apostle,
by an inference from the same testimony, and from a consideration of the
end and definition of the Law of Nature. Plato obviously mistaken in attributing
all sins to ignorance.
23. Themistius nearer the truth in
maintaining, that the delusion of the intellect is manifested not so much
in generals as in particulars. Exception to this rule.
24. Themistius, however, mistaken
in thinking that the intellect is so very seldom deceived as to generals.
Blindness of the human intellect when tested by the standard of the Divine
Law, in regard both to the first and second tables. Examples.
25. A middle view to be taken--viz.
that all sins are not imputable to ignorance, and, at the same time, that
all sins do not imply intentional malice. All the human mind conceives
and plans in this matter is evil in the sight of God. Need of divine direction
every moment.
26. The will examined. The natural
desire of good, which is universally felt, no proof of the freedom of the
human will. Two fallacies as to the use of terms, appetite and good.
27. The doctrine of the Schoolmen
on this subject opposed to and refuted by Scripture. The whole man being
subject to the power of sin, it follows that the will, which is the chief
seat of sin, requires to be most strictly curbed. Nothing ours but sin.
1. HAVING seen that the dominion of
sin, ever since the first man was brought under it, not only extends to
the whole race, but has complete possession of every soul, it now remains
to consider more closely, whether from the period of being thus enslaved,
we have been deprived of all liberty; and if any portion still remains,
how far its power extends. In order to facilitate the answer to this questions
it may be proper in passing to point out the course which our inquiry ought
to take. The best method of avoiding error is to consider the dangers which
beset us on either side. Man being devoid of all uprightness, immediately
takes occasion from the fact to indulge in sloth, and having no ability
in himself for the study of righteousness, treats the whole subject as
if he had no concern in it. On the other hand, man cannot arrogate any
thing, however minute, to himself, without robbing God of his honour, and
through rash confidence subjecting himself to a fall. To keep free of both
these rocks,151 our proper course will be, first, to show that
man has no remaining good in himself, and is beset on every side by the
most miserable destitution; and then teach him to aspire to the goodness
of which he is devoid, and the liberty of which he has been deprived: thus
giving him a stronger stimulus to exertion than he could have if he imagined
himself possessed of the highest virtue. How necessary the latter point
is, everybody sees. As to the former, several seem to entertain more doubt
than they ought. For it being admitted as incontrovertible that man is
not to be denied any thing that is truly his own, it ought also to be admitted,
that he is to be deprived of every thing like false boasting. If man had
no title to glory in himself, when, by the kindness of his Maker, he was
distinguished by the noblest ornaments, how much ought he to be humbled
now, when his ingratitude has thrust him down from the highest glory to
extreme ignominy? At the time when he was raised to the highest pinnacle
of honour, all which Scripture attributes to him is, that he was created
in the image of God, thereby intimating that the blessings in which his
happiness consisted were not his own, but derived by divine communication.
What remains, therefore, now that man is stript of all his glory, than
to acknowledge the God for whose kindness he failed to be grateful, when
he was loaded with the riches of his grace? Not having glorified him by
the acknowledgment of his blessings, now, at least, he ought to glorify
him by the confession of his poverty. In truth, it is no less useful for
us to renounce all the praise of wisdom and virtue, than to aim at the
glory of God. Those who invest us with more than we possess only add sacrilege
to our ruin. For when we are taught to contend in our own strength, what
more is done than to lift us up, and then leave us to lean on a reed which
immediately gives way? Indeed, our strength is exaggerated when it is compared
to a reed. All that foolish men invent and prattle on this subject is mere
smoke. Wherefore, it is not without reason that Augustine so often repeats
the well-known saying, that free will is more destroyed than established
by its defenders (August. in Evang. Joann. Tract. 81). It was necessary
to premise this much for the sake of some who, when they hear that human
virtue is totally overthrown, in order that the power of God in man may
be exalted, conceive an utter dislike to the whole subject, as if it were
perilous, not to say superfluous, whereas it is manifestly both most necessary
and most useful.152
2. Having lately
observed, that the faculties of the soul are seated in the mind and the
heart, let us now consider how far the power of each extends. Philosophers
generally maintain, that reason dwells in the mind like a lamp, throwing
light on all its counsels, and like a queen, governing the will--that it
is so pervaded with divine light as to be able to consult for the best,
and so endued with vigour as to be able perfectly to command; that, on
the contrary, sense is dull and short-sighted, always creeping on the ground,
grovelling among inferior objects, and never rising to true vision; that
the appetite, when it obeys reason, and does not allow itself to be subjugated
by sense, is borne to the study of virtue, holds a straight course, and
becomes transformed into will; but that when enslaved by sense, it is corrupted
and depraved so as to degenerate into lust. In a word, since, according
to their opinion, the faculties which I have mentioned above, namely, intellect,
sense, and appetite, or will (the latter being the term in ordinary use),
are seated in the soul, they maintain that the intellect is endued with
reason, the best guide to a virtuous and happy life, provided it duly avails
itself of its excellence, and exerts the power with which it is naturally
endued; that, at the same time, the inferior movement, which is termed
sense, and by which the mind is led away to error and delusion, is of such
a nature, that it can be tamed and gradually subdued by the power of reason.
To the will, moreover, they give an intermediate place between reason and
sense, regarding it as possessed of full power and freedom, whether to
obey the former, or yield itself up to be hurried away by the latter.
3. Sometimes,
indeed, convinced by their own experience, they do not deny how difficult
it is for man to establish the supremacy of reason in himself, inasmuch
as he is at one time enticed by the allurements of pleasure; at another,
deluded by a false semblance of good; and, at another, impelled by unruly
passions, and pulled away (to use Plato's expression) as by ropes or sinews
(Plato, De Legibus, lib. 1). For this reason, Cicero says, that the sparks
given forth by nature are immediately extinguished by false opinions and
depraved manners (Cicero, Tusc, Quæst. lib. 3). They confess that
when once diseases of this description have seized upon the mind, their
course is too impetuous to be easily checked, and they hesitate not to
compare them to fiery steeds, which, having thrown off the charioteer,
scamper away without restraint. At the same time, they set it down as beyond
dispute, that virtue and vice are in our own power. For (say they), If
it is in our choice to do this thing or that, it must also be in our choice
not to do it: Again, If it is in our choice not to act, it must also be
in our choice to act: But both in doing and abstaining we seem to act from
free choice; and, therefore, if we do good when we please, we can also
refrain from doing it; if we commit evil, we can also shun the commission
of it (Aristot. Ethic. lib. 3 c. 5). Nay, some have gone the length of
boasting (Seneca, passim), that it is the gift of the gods that
we live, but our own that we live well and purely. Hence Cicero says, in
the person of Cotta, that as every one acquires virtue for himself, no
wise man ever thanked the gods for it. "We are praised," says he, "for
virtue, and glory in virtue, but this could not be, if virtue were the
gift of God, and not from ourselves," (Cicero, De Nat. Deorum). A little
after, he adds, "The opinion of all mankind is, that fortune must be sought
from God, wisdom from ourselves." Thus, in short, all philosophers maintain,
that human reason is sufficient for right government; that the will, which
is inferior to it, may indeed be solicited to evil by sense, but having
a free choice, there is nothing to prevent it from following reason as
its guide in all things.
4. Among ecclesiastical
writers, although there is none who did not acknowledge that sound reason
in man was seriously injured by sin, and the will greatly entangled by
vicious desires, yet many of them made too near an approach to the philosophers.
Some of the most ancient writers appear to me to have exalted human strengths
from a fear that a distinct acknowledgment of its impotence might expose
them to the jeers of the philosophers with whom they were disputing, and
also furnish the flesh, already too much disinclined to good, with a new
pretext for sloth. Therefore, to avoid teaching anything which the majority
of mankind might deem absurd, they made it their study, in some measure,
to reconcile the doctrine of Scripture with the dogmas of philosophy, at
the same time making it their special care not to furnish any occasion
to sloth. This is obvious from their words. Chrysostom says, "God having
placed good and evil in our power, has given us full freedom of choice;
he does not keep back the unwilling, but embraces the willing," (Homil.
de Prodit. Judae). Again, "He who is wicked is often, when he so chooses,
changed into good, and he who is good falls through sluggishness, and becomes
wicked. For the Lord has made our nature free. He does not lay us under
necessity, but furnishing apposite remedies, allows the whole to depend
on the views of the patient," (Homily. 18, in Genesis). Again, "As we can
do nothing rightly until aided by the grace of God, so, until we bring
forward what is our own, we cannot obtain favour from above," (Homily.
52). He had previously said, "As the whole is not done by divine assistance,
we ourselves must of necessity bring somewhat." Accordingly, one of his
common expressions is, "Let us bring what is our own, God will supply the
rest." In unison with this, Jerome says, "It is ours to begin, God's to
finish: it is ours to offer what we can, his to supply what we cannot,"
(Dialog. 3 Cont. Pelag).
From these sentences,
you see that they have bestowed on man more than he possesses for the study
of virtue, because they thought that they could not shake off our innate
sluggishness unless they argued that we sin by ourselves alone. With what
skill they have thus argued we shall afterwards see. Assuredly we shall
soon be able to show that the sentiments just quoted are most inaccurate.153
Moreover although the Greek Fathers, above others, and especially Chrysostom,
have exceeded due bounds in extolling the powers of the human will, yet
all ancient theologians, with the exception of Augustine, are so confused,
vacillating, and contradictory on this subject, that no certainty can be
obtained from their writings. It is needless, therefore, to be more particular
in enumerating every separate opinion. It will be sufficient to extract
from each as much as the exposition of the subject seems to require. Succeeding
writers (every one courting applause for his acuteness in the defence of
human nature) have uniformly, one after the other, gone more widely astray,
until the common dogma came to be, that man was corrupted only in the sensual
part of his nature, that reason remained entire, and will was scarcely
impaired. Still the expression was often on their lips, that man's natural
gifts were corrupted, and his supernatural154 taken away. Of
the thing implied by these words, however, scarcely one in a hundred had
any distinct idea. Certainly, were I desirous clearly to express what the
corruption of nature is, I would not seek for any other expression. But
it is of great importance attentively to consider what the power of man
now is when vitiated in all the parts of his nature, and deprived of supernatural
gifts. Persons professing to be the disciples of Christ have spoken too
much like the philosophers on this subject. As if human nature were still
in its integrity, the term free will has always been in use among the Latins,
while the Greeks were not ashamed to use a still more presumptuous term--viz.
aujtexouvsion, as if man had still full power in himself.
But since the
principle entertained by all, even the vulgar, is, that man is endued with
free will, while some, who would be thought more skilful, know not how
far its power extends; it will be necessary, first to consider the meaning
of the term, and afterwards ascertain, by a simple appeal to Scripture,
what man's natural power for good or evil is. The thing meant by free will,
though constantly occurring in all writers, few have defined. Origin,155
however, seems to have stated the common opinion when he said, It is a
power of reason to discern between good and evil; of will, to choose the
one or other. Nor does Augustine differ from him when he says, It is a
power of reason and will to choose the good, grace assisting,--to choose
the bad, grace desisting. Bernard, while aiming at greater acuteness, speaks
more obscurely, when he describes it as consent, in regard to the indestructible
liberty of the wills and the inalienable judgment of reason. Anselm's definition
is not very intelligible to ordinary understandings. He calls it a power
of preserving rectitude on its own account. Peter Lombard, and the Schoolmen,
preferred the definition of Augustine, both because it was clearer, and
did not exclude divine grace, without which they saw that the will was
not sufficient of itself. They however add something of their own, because
they deemed it either better or necessary for clearer explanation. First,
they agree that the term will (arbitrium) has reference to reason,
whose office it is to distinguish between good and evil, and that the epithet
free
properly belongs to the will, which may incline either way. Wherefore,
since liberty properly belongs to the will, Thomas Aquinas says (Part 1
Quast. 83, Art. 3), that the most congruous definition is to call free
will an elective power, combining intelligence and appetite, but inclining
more to appetite. We now perceive in what it is they suppose the faculty
of free will to consist--viz. in reason and will. It remains to see how
much they attribute to each.
5. In general,
they are wont to place under the free will of man only intermediate things--viz.
those which pertain not to the kingdom of God, while they refer true righteousness
to the special grace of God and spiritual regeneration. The author of the
work, "De Vocatione Gentium," (On the Calling of the Gentiles),156
wishing to show this, describes the will as threefold--viz. sensitive,
animal, and spiritual. The two former, he says, are free to man, but the
last is the work of the Holy Spirit. What truth there is in this will be
considered in its own place. Our intention at present is only to mention
the opinions of others, not to refute them. When writers treat of free
will, their inquiry is chiefly directed not to what its power is in relation
to civil or external actions, but to the obedience required by the divine
law. The latter I admit to be the great question, but I cannot think the
former should be altogether neglected; and I hope to be able to give the
best reason for so thinking (sec. 12 to 18). The schools, however, have
adopted a distinction which enumerates three kinds of freedom (see Lombard,
lib. 2 Dist. 25); the first, a freedom from necessity; the second, a freedom
from sin; and the third, a freedom from misery: the first naturally so
inherent in man, that he cannot possibly be deprived of it; while through
sin the other two have been lost. I willingly admit this distinction, except
in so far as it confounds
necessity with compulsion. How
widely the things differ, and how important it is to attend to the difference,
will appear elsewhere.
6. All this being
admitted, it will be beyond dispute, that free will does not enable any
man to perform good works, unless he is assisted by grace; indeed, the
special grace which the elect alone receive through regeneration. For I
stay not to consider the extravagance of those who say that grace is offered
equally and promiscuously to all (Lomb. lib. 2 Dist. 26). But it has not
yet been shown whether man is entirely deprived of the power of well-doing,
or whether he still possesses it in some, though in a very feeble and limited
degree--a degree so feeble and limited, that it can do nothing of itself,
but when assisted by grace, is able also to perform its part. The Master
of the Sentences (Lombard, ibid). wishing to explain this, teaches that
a twofold grace is necessary to fit for any good work. The one he calls
Operating. To it, it is owing that we effectually will what is good. The
other, which succeeds this good will, and aids it, he calls Co-operating.
My objection to this division (see infra, chap. 3 sec. 10, and chap.
7 sec. 9) is, that while it attributes the effectual desire of good to
divine grace, it insinuates that man, by his own nature, desires good in
some degree, though ineffectually. Thus Bernard, while maintaining that
a good will is the work of God, concedes this much to man--viz. that of
his own nature he longs for such a good will. This differs widely from
the view of Augustine, though Lombard pretends to have taken the division
from him. Besides, there is an ambiguity in the second division, which
has led to an erroneous interpretation. For it has been thought that we
co-operate with subsequent grace, inasmuch as it pertains to us either
to nullify the first grace, by rejecting its or to confirm it, by obediently
yielding to it. The author of the work De Vocatione Gentium expresses it
thus: It is free to those who enjoy the faculty of reason to depart from
grace, so that the not departing is a reward, and that which cannot be
done without the co-operation of the Spirit is imputed as merit to those
whose will might have made it otherwise (lib. 2 cap. 4). It seemed proper
to make these two observations in passing, that the reader may see how
far I differ from the sounder of the Schoolmen. Still further do I differ
from more modern sophists, who have departed even more widely than the
Schoolmen from the ancient doctrine. The division, however, shows in what
respect free will is attributed to man. For Lombard ultimately declares
(lib. 2 Dist. 25), that our freedom is not to the extent of leaving us
equally inclined to good and evil in act or in thought, but only to the
extent of freeing us from compulsion. This liberty is compatible with our
being depraved, the servants of sin, able to do nothing but sin.
7. In this way,
then, man is said to have free will, not because he has a free choice of
good and evil, but because he acts voluntarily, and not by compulsion.
This is perfectly true: but why should so small a matter have been dignified
with so proud a title? An admirable freedom! that man is not forced to
be the servant of sin, while he is, however, ejthelodou'lo" (a voluntary
slave); his will being bound by the fetters of sin. I abominate mere verbal
disputes, by which the Church is harassed to no purpose; but I think we
ought religiously to eschew terms which imply some absurdity, especially
in subjects where error is of pernicious consequence. How few are there
who, when they hear free will attributed to man, do not immediately imagine
that he is the master of his mind and will in such a sense, that he can
of himself incline himself either to good or evil? It may be said that
such dangers are removed by carefully expounding the meaning to the people.
But such is the proneness of the human mind to go astray, that it will
more quickly draw error from one little word, than truth from a lengthened
discourse. Of this, the very term in question furnishes too strong a proof.
For the explanation given by ancient Christian writers having been lost
sight of, almost all who have come after them, by attending only to the
etymology of the term, have been led to indulge a fatal confidence.
8. As to the
Fathers (if their authority weighs with us), they have the term constantly
in their mouths; but they, at the same time, declare what extent of meaning
they attach to it. In particular, Augustine hesitates not to call the will
a slave.157 In another passages he is offended with those
who deny free will; but his chief reason for this is explained when he
says, "Only lest any one should presume so to deny freedom of will, from
a desire to excuse sin." It is certain he elsewhere admits, that without
the Spirit the will of man is not free, inasmuch as it is subject to lusts
which chain and master it. And again, that nature began to want liberty
the moment the will was vanquished by the revolt into which it fell. Again,
that man, by making a bad use of free will, lost both himself and his will.
Again, that free will having been made a captive, can do nothing in the
way of righteousness. Again, that no will is free which has not been made
so by divine grace. Again, that the righteousness of God is not fulfilled
when the law orders, and man acts, as it were, by his own strength, but
when the Spirit assists, and the will (not the free will of man, but the
will freed by God) obeys. He briefly states the ground of all these observations,
when he says, that man at his creation received a great degree of free
will, but lost it by sinning. In another place, after showing that free
will is established by grace, he strongly inveighs against those who arrogate
any thing to themselves without grace. His words are, "How much soever
miserable men presume to plume themselves on free will before they are
made free, or on their strength after they are made free, they do not consider
that, in the very expression free will, liberty is implied. `Where
the Spirit of the Lord is, there is liberty,' (2 Cor. 3:17). If, therefore,
they are the servants of sin, why do they boast of free will? He who has
been vanquished is the servant of him who vanquished him. But if men have
been made free, why do they boast of it as of their own work? Are they
so free that they are unwilling to be the servants of Him who has said,
`Without me ye can do nothing'?" (John 15:5). In another passage he even
seems to ridicule the word, when he says,158 "That the will
is indeed free, but not freed--free of righteousness, but enslaved to sin."
The same idea he elsewhere repeats and explains, when he says, "That man
is not free from righteousness save by the choice of his will, and is not
made free from sin save by the grace of the Saviour." Declaring that the
freedom of man is nothing else than emancipation or manumission from righteousness,
he seems to jest at the emptiness of the name. If any one, then, chooses
to make use of this terms without attaching any bad meaning to it, he shall
not be troubled by me on that account; but as it cannot be retained without
very great danger, I think the abolition of it would be of great advantage
to the Church. I am unwilling to use it myself; and others if they will
take my advice, will do well to abstain from it.
9. It may, perhaps,
seem that I have greatly prejudiced my own view by confessing that all
the ecclesiastical writers, with the exception of Augustine, have spoken
so ambiguously or inconsistently on this subject, that no certainty is
attainable from their writings. Some will interpret this to mean, that
I wish to deprive them of their right of suffrage, because they are opposed
to me. Truly, however, I have had no other end in view than to consult,
simply and in good faith, for the advantage of pious minds, which, if they
trust to those writers for their opinion, will always fluctuate in uncertainty.
At one time they teach, that man having been deprived of the power of free
Will must flee to grace alone; at another, they equip or seem to equip
him in armour of his own. It is not difficult, however, to show, that notwithstanding
of the ambiguous manner in which those writers express themselves, they
hold human virtue in little or no account, and ascribe the whole merit
of all that is good to the Holy Spirit. To make this more manifest, I may
here quote some passages from them. What, then, is meant by Cyprian in
the passage so often lauded by Augustine,159 "Let us glory in
nothing, because nothing is ours," unless it be, that man being utterly
destitute, considered in himself, should entirely depend on God? What is
meant by Augustine and Eucherius,160 when they expound that
Christ is the tree of life, and that whose puts forth his hand to it shall
live; that the choice of the will is the tree of the knowledge of good
and evil, and that he who, forsaking the grace of God, tastes of it shall
die? What is meant by Chrysostom, When he says, "That every man is not
only naturally a sinner, but is wholly sin?" If there is nothing good in
us; if man, from the crown of the head to the sole of the foot, is wholly
sin; if it is not even lawful to try how far the power of the will extends,--how
can it be lawful to share the merit of a good work between God and man?
I might quote many passages to the same effect from other writers; but
lest any caviller should say, that I select those only which serve my purpose,
and cunningly pass by those which are against me, I desist. This much,
however, I dare affirm, that though they sometimes go too far in extolling
free will, the main object which they had in view was to teach man entirely
to renounce all self-confidence, and place his strength in God alone. I
now proceed to a simple exposition of the truth in regard to the nature
of man.
10. Here however,
I must again repeat what I premised at the outset of this chapter,161
that he who is most deeply abased and alarmed, by the consciousness of
his disgrace, nakedness, want, and misery, has made the greatest progress
in the knowledge of himself. Man is in no danger of taking too much from
himself, provided he learns that whatever he wants is to be recovered in
God. But he cannot arrogate to himself one particle beyond his due, without
losing himself in vain confidence, and, by transferring divine honour to
himself, becoming guilty of the greatest impiety. And, assuredly, whenever
our minds are seized with a longing to possess a somewhat of our own, which
may reside in us rather than in God, we may rest assured that the thought
is suggested by no other counsellor than he who enticed our first parents
to aspire to be like gods, knowing good and evil.162 It is sweet,
indeed, to have so much virtue of our own as to be able to rest in ourselves;
but let the many solemn passages by which our pride is sternly humbled,
deter us from indulging this vain confidence: "Cursed be the man that trusteth
in man, and maketh flesh his arm." (Jer. 17:5). "He delighteth not in the
strength of the horse; he taketh not pleasure in the legs of a man. The
Lord taketh pleasure in those that fear him, in those that hope in his
mercy," (Ps. 147:10, 11). "He giveth power to the faint; and to them that
have no might he increaseth strength. Even the youths shall faint and be
weary, and the young men shall utterly fall: But they that wait upon the
Lord shall renew their strength," (Is. 40:29-31). The scope of all these
passages is that we must not entertain any opinion whatever of our own
strength, if we would enjoy the favour of God, who "resisteth the proud,
but giveth grace unto the humble," (James 4:6). Then let us call to mind
such promises as these, "I will pour water upon him that is thirsty, and
floods upon the dry ground," (Is. 44:3); "Ho, every one that thirsteth,
come ye to the waters," (Is. 55:1). These passages declare, that none are
admitted to enjoy the blessings of God save those who are pining under
a sense of their own poverty. Nor ought such passages as the following
to be omitted: "The sun shall no more be thy light by day; neither for
brightness shall the moon give light unto thee: but the Lord shall be unto
thee an everlasting light, and thy God thy glory," (Is. 60:19). The Lord
certainly does not deprive his servants of the light of the sun or moon,
but as he would alone appear glorious in them, he dissuades them from confidence
even in those objects which they deem most excellent.
11. I have always
been exceedingly delighted with the words of Chrysostom, "The foundation
of our philosophy is humility;"163 and still more with those
of Augustine, "As the orator,164 when asked, What is the first
precept in eloquence? answered, Delivery: What is the second? Delivery:
What the third? Delivery: so, if you ask me in regard to the precepts of
the Christian Religion, I will answer, first, second, and third, Humility."
By humility he means not when a man, with a consciousness of some virtue,
refrains from pride, but when he truly feels that he has no refuge but
in humility. This is clear from another passage,165 "Let no
man," says he, "flatter himself: of himself he is a devil: his happiness
he owes entirely to God. What have you of your own but sin? Take your sin
which is your own; for righteousness is of God." Again, "Why presume so
much on the capability of nature? It is wounded, maimed, vexed, lost. The
thing wanted is genuine confession, not false defence." "When any one knows
that he is nothing in himself, and has no help from himself, the weapons
within himself are broken, and the war is ended." All the weapons of impiety
must be bruised, and broken, and burnt in the fire; you must remain unarmed,
having no help in yourself. The more infirm you are, the more the Lord
will sustain you. So, in expounding the seventieth Psalm, he forbids us
to remember our own righteousness, in order that we may recognise the righteousness
of God, and shows that God bestows his grace upon us, that we may know
that we are nothing; that we stand only by the mercy of God, seeing that
in ourselves eve are altogether wicked. Let us not contend with God for
our right, as if anything attributed to him were lost to our salvation.
As our insignificance is his exaltation, so the confession of our insignificance
has its remedy provided in his mercy. I do not ask, however, that man should
voluntarily yield without being convinced, or that, if he has any powers,
he should shut his eyes to them, that he may thus be subdued to true humility;
but that getting quit of the disease of self-love and ambition, filautiva
kai; filoneikiva, under the blinding of which he thinks of himself more
highly than he ought to think, he may see himself as he really is, by looking
into the faithful mirror of Scripture.
12. I feel pleased
with the well-known saying which has been borrowed from the writings of
Augustine, that man's natural gifts were corrupted by sin, and his supernatural
gifts withdrawn; meaning by supernatural gifts the light of faith and righteousness,
which would have been sufficient for the attainment of heavenly life and
everlasting felicity. Man, when he withdrew his allegiance to God, was
deprived of the spiritual gifts by which he had been raised to the hope
of eternal salvation. Hence it follows, that he is now an exile from the
kingdom of God, so that all things which pertain to the blessed life of
the soul are extinguished in him until he recover them by the grace of
regeneration. Among these are faith, love to God, charity towards our neighbour,
the study of righteousness and holiness. All these, when restored to us
by Christ, are to be regarded as adventitious and above nature. If so,
we infer that they were previously abolished. On the other hand, soundness
of mind and integrity of heart were, at the same time, withdrawn, and it
is this which constitutes the corruption of natural gifts. For although
there is still some residue of intelligence and judgment as well as will,
we cannot call a mind sound and entire which is both weak and immersed
in darkness. As to the will, its depravity is but too well known. Therefore,
since reason, by which man discerns between good and evil, and by which
he understands and judges, is a natural gift, it could not be entirely
destroyed; but being partly weakened and partly corrupted, a shapeless
ruin is all that remains. In this sense it is said (John 1:5), that "the
light shineth in darkness, and the darkness comprehended it not;" these
words clearly expressing both points--viz. that in the perverted and degenerate
nature of man there are still some sparks which show that he is a rational
animal, and differs from the brutes, inasmuch as he is endued with intelligence,
and yet, that this light is so smothered by clouds of darkness that it
cannot shine forth to any good effect. In like manner, the will, because
inseparable from the nature of man, did not perish, but was so enslaved
by depraved lusts as to be incapable of one righteous desire. The definition
now given is complete, but there are several points which require to be
explained. Therefore, proceeding agreeably to that primary distinction
(Book 1 c. 15 sec. 7 and 8), by which we divided the soul into intellect
and will, we will now inquire into the power of the intellect.
To charge the
intellect with perpetual blindness, so as to leave it no intelligence of
any description whatever, is repugnant not only to the Word of God, but
to common experience. We see that there has been implanted in the human
mind a certain desire of investigating truth, to which it never would aspire
unless some relish for truth antecedently existed. There is, therefore,
now, in the human mind, discernment to this extent, that it is naturally
influenced by the love of truth, the neglect of which in the lower animals
is a proof of their gross and irrational nature. Still it is true that
this love of truth fails before it reaches the goal, forthwith falling
away into vanity. As the human mind is unable, from dullness, to pursue
the right path of investigation, and, after various wanderings, stumbling
every now and then like one groping in darkness, at length gets completely
bewildered, so its whole procedure proves how unfit it is to search the
truth and find it. Then it labours under another grievous defect, in that
it frequently fails to discern what the knowledge is which it should study
to acquire. Hence, under the influence of a vain curiosity, it torments
itself with superfluous and useless discussions, either not adverting at
all to the things necessary to be known, or casting only a cursory and
contemptuous glance at them. At all events, it scarcely ever studies them
in sober earnest. Profane writers are constantly complaining of this perverse
procedure, and yet almost all of them are found pursuing it. Hence Solomon,
throughout the Book of Ecclesiastes, after enumerating all the studies
in which men think they attain the highest wisdom, pronounces them vain
and frivolous.
13. Still, however,
man's efforts are not always so utterly fruitless as not to lead to some
result, especially when his attention is directed to inferior objects.
Nay, even with regard to superior objects, though he is more careless in
investigating them, he makes some little progress. Here, however, his ability
is more limited, and he is never made more sensible of his weakness than
when he attempts to soar above the sphere of the present life. It may therefore
be proper, in order to make it more manifest how far our ability extends
in regard to these two classes of objects, to draw a distinction between
them. The distinction is, that we have one kind of intelligence of earthly
things, and another of heavenly things. By earthly things, I mean those
which relate not to God and his kingdom, to true righteousness and future
blessedness, but have some connection with the present life, and are in
a manner confined within its boundaries. By heavenly things, I mean the
pure knowledge of God, the method of true righteousness, and the mysteries
of the heavenly kingdom. To the former belong matters of policy and economy,
all mechanical arts and liberal studies. To the latter (as to which, see
the eighteenth and following sections) belong the knowledge of God and
of his will, and the means of framing the life in accordance with them.
As to the former, the view to be taken is this: Since man is by nature
a social animal, he is disposed, from natural instinct, to cherish and
preserve society; and accordingly we see that the minds of all men have
impressions of civil order and honesty. Hence it is that every individual
understands how human societies must he regulated by laws, and also is
able to comprehend the principles of those laws. Hence the universal agreement
in regard to such subjects, both among nations and individuals, the seeds
of them being implanted in the breasts of all without a teacher or lawgiver.
The truth of this fact is not affected by the wars and dissensions which
immediately arise, while some, such as thieves and robbers, would invert
the rules of justice, loosen the bonds of law, and give free scope to their
lust; and while others (a vice of most frequent occurrence) deem that to
be unjust which is elsewhere regarded as just, and, on the contrary, hold
that to be praiseworthy which is elsewhere forbidden. For such persons
do not hate the laws from not knowing that they are good and sacred, but,
inflamed with headlong passion, quarrel with what is clearly reasonable,
and licentiously hate what their mind and understanding approve. Quarrels
of this latter kind do not destroy the primary idea of justice. For while
men dispute with each other as to particular enactments, their ideas of
equity agree in substance. This, no doubt, proves the weakness of the human
mind, which, even when it seems on the right path, halts and hesitates.
Still, however, it is true, that some principle of civil order is impressed
on all. And this is ample proof, that, in regard to the constitution of
the present life, no man is devoid of the light of reason.
14. Next come
manual and liberal arts, in learning which, as all have some degree of
aptitude, the full force of human acuteness is displayed. But though all
are not equally able to learn all the arts, we have sufficient evidence
of a common capacity in the fact, that there is scarcely an individual
who does not display intelligence in some particular art. And this capacity
extends not merely to the learning of the art, but to the devising of something
new, or the improving of what had been previously learned. This led Plato
to adopt the erroneous idea, that such knowledge was nothing but recollection.166
So cogently does it oblige us to acknowledge that its principle is naturally
implanted in the human mind. But while these proofs openly attest the fact
of a universal reason and intelligence naturally implanted, this universality
is of a kind which should lead every individual for himself to recognise
it as a special gift of God. To this gratitude we have a sufficient call
from the Creator himself, when, in the case of idiots, he shows what the
endowments of the soul would be were it not pervaded with his light. Though
natural to all, it is so in such a sense that it ought to be regarded as
a gratuitous gift of his beneficence to each. Moreover, the invention,
the methodical arrangement, and the more thorough and superior knowledge
of the arts, being confined to a few individuals cannot be regarded as
a solid proof of common shrewdness. Still, however, as they are bestowed
indiscriminately on the good and the bad, they are justly classed among
natural endowments.
15. Therefore,
in reading profane authors, the admirable light of truth displayed in them
should remind us, that the human mind, however much fallen and perverted
from its original integrity, is still adorned and invested with admirable
gifts from its Creator. If we reflect that the Spirit of God is the only
fountain of truth, we will be careful, as we would avoid offering insult
to him, not to reject or condemn truth wherever it appears. In despising
the gifts, we insult the Giver. How, then, can we deny that truth must
have beamed on those ancient lawgivers who arranged civil order and discipline
with so much equity? Shall we say that the philosophers, in their exquisite
researches and skilful description of nature, were blind? Shall we deny
the possession of intellect to those who drew up rules for discourse, and
taught us to speak in accordance with reason? Shall we say that those who,
by the cultivation of the medical art, expended their industry in our behalf
were only raving? What shall we say of the mathematical sciences? Shall
we deem them to be the dreams of madmen? Nay, we cannot read the writings
of the ancients on these subjects without the highest admiration; an admiration
which their excellence will not allow us to withhold. But shall we deem
anything to be noble and praiseworthy, without tracing it to the hand of
God? Far from us be such ingratitude; an ingratitude not chargeable even
on heathen poets, who acknowledged that philosophy and laws, and all useful
arts were the inventions of the gods. Therefore, since it is manifest that
men whom the Scriptures term carnal, are so acute and clear-sighted in
the investigation of inferior things, their example should teach us how
many gifts the Lord has left in possession of human nature, notwithstanding
of its having been despoiled of the true good.
16. Moreover,
let us not forget that there are most excellent blessings which the Divine
Spirit dispenses to whom he will for the common benefit of mankind. For
if the skill and knowledge required for the construction of the Tabernacle
behaved to be imparted to Bezaleel and Aholiab, by the Spirit of God (Exod.
31:2; 35:30), it is not strange that the knowledge of those things which
are of the highest excellence in human life is said to be communicated
to us by the Spirit. Nor is there any ground for asking what concourse
the Spirit can have with the ungodly, who are altogether alienated from
God? For what is said as to the Spirit dwelling in believers only, is to
be understood of the Spirit of holiness by which we are consecrated to
God as temples. Notwithstanding of this, He fills, moves, and invigorates
all things by the virtue of the Spirit, and that according to the peculiar
nature which each class of beings has received by the Law of Creation.
But if the Lord has been pleased to assist us by the work and ministry
of the ungodly in physics, dialectics, mathematics, and other similar sciences,
let us avail ourselves of it, lest, by neglecting the gifts of God spontaneously
offered to us, we be justly punished for our sloth. Lest any one, however,
should imagine a man to be very happy merely because, with reference to
the elements of this world, he has been endued with great talents for the
investigation of truth, we ought to add, that the whole power of intellect
thus bestowed is, in the sight of God, fleeting and vain whenever it is
not based on a solid foundation of truth. Augustine (supra, sec.
4 and 12), to whom, as we have observed, the Master of Sentences (lib.
2 Dist. 25), and the Schoolmen, are forced to subscribe, says most correctly
that as the gratuitous gifts bestowed on man were withdrawn, so the natural
gifts which remained were corrupted after the fall. Not that they can be
polluted in themselves in so far as they proceed from God, but that they
have ceased to be pure to polluted man, lest he should by their means obtain
any praise.
17. The sum of
the whole is this: From a general survey of the human race, it appears
that one of the essential properties of our nature is reason, which distinguishes
us from the lower animals, just as these by means of sense are distinguished
from inanimate objects. For although some individuals are born without
reason, that defect does not impair the general kindness of God, but rather
serves to remind us, that whatever we retain ought justly to be ascribed
to the Divine indulgence. Had God not so spared us, our revolt would have
carried along with it the entire destruction of nature. In that some excel
in acuteness, and some in judgment, while others have greater readiness
in learning some peculiar art, God, by this variety commends his favour
toward us, lest any one should presume to arrogate to himself that which
flows from His mere liberality. For whence is it that one is more excellent
than another, but that in a common nature the grace of God is specially
displayed in passing by many and thus proclaiming that it is under obligation
to none. We may add, that each individual is brought under particular influences
according to his calling. Many examples of this occur in the Book of Judges,
in which the Spirit of the Lord is said to have come upon those whom he
called to govern his people (Judges 6:34). In short, in every distinguished
act there is a special inspiration. Thus it is said of Saul, that "there
went with him a band of men whose hearts the Lord had touched," (1 Sam.
10:26). And when his inauguration to the kingdom is foretold, Samuel thus
addresses him, "The Spirit of the Lord will come upon thee, and thou shalt
prophesy with them, and shalt be turned into another man," (1 Sam. 10:6).
This extends to the whole course of government, as it is afterwards said
of David, "The Spirit of the Lord came upon David from that day forward,"
(1 Sam. 16:13). The same thing is elsewhere said with reference to particular
movements. Nay, even in Homer, men are said to excel in genius, not only
according as Jupiter has distributed to each, but according as he leads
them day by day, oJion ejp e\ma" a[geisi. And certainly experience shows
when those who were most skilful and ingenious stand stupefied, that the
minds of men are entirely under the control of God, who rules them every
moment. Hence it is said, that "He poureth contempt upon princes, and causeth
them to wander in the wilderness where there is no way," (Ps. 107:40).
Still, in this diversity we can trace some remains of the divine image
distinguishing the whole human race from other creatures.
18. We must now
explain what the power of human reason is, in regard to the kingdom of
God, and spiritual discernments which consists chiefly of three things--the
knowledge of God, the knowledge of his paternal favour towards us, which
constitutes our salvation, and the method of regulating of our conduct
in accordance with the Divine Law. With regard to the former two, but more
properly the second, men otherwise the most ingenious are blinder than
moles. I deny not, indeed, that in the writings of philosophers we meet
occasionally with shrewd and apposite remarks on the nature of God, though
they invariably savour somewhat of giddy imagination. As observed above,
the Lord has bestowed on them some slight perception of his Godhead that
they might not plead ignorance as an excuse for their impiety, and has,
at times, instigated them to deliver some truths, the confession of which
should be their own condemnation. Still, though seeing, they saw not. Their
discernment was not such as to direct them to the truth, far less to enable
them to attain it, but resembled that of the bewildered traveller, who
sees the flash of lightning glance far and wide for a moment, and then
vanish into the darkness of the night, before he can advance a single step.
So far is such assistance from enabling him to find the right path. Besides,
how many monstrous falsehoods intermingle with those minute particles of
truth scattered up and down in their writings as if by chance. In short,
not one of them even made the least approach to that assurance of the divine
favour, without which the mind of man must ever remain a mere chaos of
confusion. To the great truths, What God is in himself, and what he is
in relation to us, human reason makes not the least approach. (See Book
3 c. 2 sec. 14, 15, 16).
19. But since
we are intoxicated with a false opinion of our own discernment, and can
scarcely be persuaded that in divine things it is altogether stupid and
blind, I believe the best course will be to establish the fact, not by
argument, but by Scripture. Most admirable to this effect is the passage
which I lately quoted from John, when he says, "In him was life; and the
life was the light of men. And the light shineth in darkness; and the darkness
comprehended it not," (John 1:4, 5). He intimates that the human soul is
indeed irradiated with a beam of divine light, so that it is never left
utterly devoid of some small flame, or rather spark, though not such as
to enable it to comprehend God. And why so? Because its acuteness is, in
reference to the knowledge of God, mere blindness. When the Spirit describes
men under the term darkness, he declares them void of all power
of spiritual intelligence. For this reason, it is said that believers,
in embracing Christ, are "born, not of blood, nor of the will of the flesh,
nor of the will of man, but of God," (John 1:13); in other words, that
the flesh has no capacity for such sublime wisdom as to apprehend God,
and the things of God, unless illumined by His Spirit. In like manner our
Saviour, when he was acknowledged by Peter, declared that it was by special
revelation from the Father (Mt. 16:17).
20. If we were
persuaded of a truth which ought to be beyond dispute--viz. that human
nature possesses none of the gifts which the elect receive from their heavenly
Father through the Spirit of regeneration, there would be no room here
for hesitation. For thus speaks the congregation of the faithful, by the
mouth of the prophet: "With thee is the fountain of life: in thy light
shall we see light," (Ps. 36:9). To the same effect is the testimony of
the Apostle Paul, when he declares, that "no man can say that Jesus is
the Lord, but by the Holy Ghost," (1 Cor. 12:3). And John Baptist, on seeing
the dullness of his disciples, exclaims, "A man can receive nothing, unless
it be given him from heaven," (John 3:27). That the gift to which he here
refers must be understood not of ordinary natural gifts, but of special
illumination, appears from this--that he was complaining how little his
disciples had profited by all that he had said to them in commendation
of Christ. "I see," says he, "that my words are of no effect in imbuing
the minds of men with divine things, unless the Lord enlighten their understandings
by His Spirit." Nay, Moses also, while upbraiding the people for their
forgetfulness, at the same time observes, that they could not become wise
in the mysteries of God without his assistance. "Ye have seen all that
the Lord did before your eyes in the land of Egypt, unto Pharaoh, and unto
all his servants, and unto all his land; the great temptations which thine
eyes have seen, the signs, and these great miracles: yet the Lord has not
given you an heart to perceive, and eyes to see, and ears to hear, unto
this, day," (Deut. 29:2, 3, 4). Would the expression have been stronger
had he called us mere blocks in regard to the contemplation of divine things?
Hence the Lord, by the mouth of the Prophet, promises to the Israelites
as a singular favour, "I will give them an heart to know me," (Jer. 24:7);
intimating, that in spiritual things the human mind is wise only in so
far as he enlightens it. This was also clearly confirmed by our Saviour
when he said, "No man can come to me, except the Father which has sent
me draw him," (John 6:44). Nay, is not he himself the living image of his
Father, in which the full brightness of his glory is manifested to us?
Therefore, how far our faculty of knowing God extends could not be better
shown than when it is declared, that though his image is so plainly exhibited,
we have not eyes to perceive it. What? Did not Christ descend into the
world that he might make the will of his Father manifest to men, and did
he not faithfully perform the office? True! He did; but nothing is accomplished
by his preaching unless the inner teacher, the Spirit, open the way into
our minds. Only those, therefore, come to him who have heard and learned
of the Father. And in what is the method of this hearing and learning?
It is when the Spirit, with a wondrous and special energy, forms the ear
to hear and the mind to understand. Lest this should seem new, our Saviour
refers to the prophecy of Isaiah, which contains a promise of the renovation
of the Church. "For a small moment have I forsaken thee; but with great
mercies will I gather thee," (Is. 54:7). If the Lord here predicts some
special blessing to his elect, it is plain that the teaching to which he
refers is not that which is common to them with the ungodly and profane.
It thus appears
that none can enter the kingdom of God save those whose minds have been
renewed by the enlightening of the Holy Spirit. On this subject the clearest
exposition is given by Paul, who, when expressly handling it, after condemning
the whole wisdom of the world as foolishness and vanity, and thereby declaring
man's utter destitution, thus concludes, "The natural man receiveth not
the things of the Spirit of God: for they are foolishness unto him: neither
can he know them, for they are spiritually discerned," (1 Cor. 2:14). Whom
does he mean by the "natural man"? The man who trusts to the light of nature.
Such a man has no understanding in the spiritual mysteries of God. Why
so? Is it because through sloth he neglects them? Nay, though he exert
himself, it is of no avail; they are "spiritually discerned." And what
does this mean? That altogether hidden from human discernment, they are
made known only by the revelation of the Spirit; so that they are accounted
foolishness wherever the Spirit does not give light. The Apostle had previously
declared, that "Eye has not seen, nor ear heard, neither have entered into
the heart of man, the things which God has prepared for them that love
him;" nay, that the wisdom of the world is a kind of veil by which the
mind is prevented from beholding God (1 Cor. 2:9). What would we more?
The Apostle declares that God has "made foolish the wisdom of this world,"
(1 Cor. 1:20); and shall we attribute to it an acuteness capable of penetrating
to God, and the hidden mysteries of his kingdom? Far from us be such presumption!
21. What the
Apostle here denies to man, he, in another place, ascribes to God alone,
when he prays, "that the God of our Lord Jesus Christ, the Father of glory,
may give unto you the spirit of wisdom and revelation," (Eph. 1:17). You
now hear that all wisdom and revelation is the gift of God. What follows?
"The eyes of your understanding being enlightened." Surely, if they require
a new enlightening, they must in themselves be blind. The next words are,
"that ye may know what is the hope of his calling," (Eph. 1:18). In other
words, the minds of men have not capacity enough to know their calling.
Let no prating Pelagian here allege that God obviates this rudeness or
stupidity, when, by the doctrine of his word, he directs us to a path which
we could not have found without a guide. David had the law, comprehending
in it all the wisdom that could be desired, and yet not contented with
this, he prays, "Open thou mine eyes, that I may behold wondrous things
out of thy law," (Ps. 119:18). By this expression, he certainly intimates,
that it is like sunrise to the earth when the word of God shines forth;
but that men do not derive much benefit from it until he himself, who is
for this reason called the Father of lights (James 1:17), either gives
eyes or opens them; because, whatever is not illuminated by his Spirit
is wholly darkness. The Apostles had been duly and amply instructed by
the best of teachers. Still, as they wanted the Spirit of truth to complete
their education in the very doctrine which they had previously heard, they
were ordered to wait for him (John 14:26). If we confess that what we ask
of God is lacking to us, and He by the very thing promised intimates our
want, no man can hesitate to acknowledge that he is able to understand
the mysteries of God, only in so far as illuminated by his grace. He who
ascribes to himself more understanding than this, is the blinder for not
acknowledging his blindness.
22. It remains
to consider the third branch of the knowledge of spiritual things--viz.
the method of properly regulating the conduct. This is correctly termed
the knowledge of the works of righteousness, a branch in which the human
mind seems to have somewhat more discernment than in the former two, since
an Apostle declares, "When the Gentiles, which have not the law, do by
nature the things contained in the law, these, having not the law, are
a law unto themselves: which show the work of the law written in their
hearts, their conscience also bearing witness, and their thoughts the meantime
accusing or else excusing one another" (Rom. 2:14, 15). If the Gentiles
have the righteousness of the law naturally engraven on their minds, we
certainly cannot say that they are altogether blind as to the rule of life.
Nothing, indeed is more common, than for man to be sufficiently instructed
in a right course of conduct by natural law, of which the Apostle here
speaks. Let us consider, however for what end this knowledge of the law
was given to men. For from this it will forthwith appear how far it can
conduct them in the way of reason and truth. This is even plain from the
words of Paul, if we attend to their arrangement. He had said a little
before, that those who had sinned in the law will be judged by the law;
and those who have sinned without the law will perish without the law.
As it might seem unaccountable that the Gentiles should perish without
any previous judgment, he immediately subjoins, that conscience served
them instead of the law, and was therefore sufficient for their righteous
condemnation. The end of the natural law, therefore, is to render man inexcusable,
and may be not improperly defined--the judgment of conscience distinguishing
sufficiently between just and unjust, and by convicting men on their own
testimony depriving them of all pretext for ignorance. So indulgent is
man towards himself, that, while doing evil, he always endeavours as much
as he can to suppress the idea of sin. It was this, apparently, which induced
Plato (in his Protagoras) to suppose that sins were committed only through
ignorance. There might be some ground for this, if hypocrisy were so successful
in hiding vice as to keep the conscience clear in the sight of God. But
since the sinner, when trying to evade the judgment of good and evil implanted
in him, is ever and anon dragged forward, and not permitted to wink so
effectually as not to be compelled at times, whether he will or not, to
open his eyes, it is false to say that he sins only through ignorance.
23. Themistius
is more accurate in teaching (Paraphr. in Lib. 3 de Anima, cap. 46), that
the intellect is very seldom mistaken in the general definition or essence
of the matter; but that deception begins as it advances farther, namely,
when it descends to particulars. That homicide, putting the case in the
abstract, is an evil, no man will deny; and yet one who is conspiring the
death of his enemy deliberates on it as if the thing was good. The adulterer
will condemn adultery in the abstract, and yet flatter himself while privately
committing it. The ignorance lies here: that man, when he comes to the
particular, forgets the rule which he had laid down in the general case.
Augustine treats most admirably on this subject in his exposition of the
first verse of the fifty-seventh Psalm. The doctrine of Themistius, however,
does not always hold true: for the turpitude of the crime sometimes presses
so on the conscience, that the sinner does not impose upon himself by a
false semblance of good, but rushes into sin knowingly and willingly. Hence
the expression,--I see the better course, and approve it: I follow the
worse (Medea of Ovid). For this reason, Aristotle seems to me to have made
a very shrewd distinction between incontinence and intemperance (Ethic.
lib. 7 cap. 3) Where incontinence (ajkrasiva) reigns, he says, that through
the passion (pavtho") particular knowledge is suppressed: so that the individual
sees not in his own misdeed the evil which he sees generally in similar
cases; but when the passion is over, repentance immediately succeeds. Intemperance
(ajkolasiva), again, is not extinguished or diminished by a sense of sin,
but, on the contrary, persists in the evil choice which it has once made.
24. Moreover,
when you hear of a universal judgment in man distinguishing between good
and evil, you must not suppose that this judgment is, in every respect,
sound and entire. For if the hearts of men are imbued with a sense of justice
and injustice, in order that they may have no pretext to allege ignorance,
it is by no means necessary for this purpose that they should discern the
truth in particular cases. It is even more than sufficient if they understand
so far as to be unable to practice evasion without being convicted by their
own conscience, and beginning even now to tremble at the judgment-seat
of God. Indeed, if we would test our reason by the Divine Law, which is
a perfect standard of righteousness, we should find how blind it is in
many respects. It certainly attains not to the principal heads in the First
Table, such as, trust in God, the ascription to him of all praise in virtue
and righteousness, the invocation of his name, and the true observance
of his day of rest. Did ever any soul, under the guidance of natural sense,
imagine that these and the like constitute the legitimate worship of God?
When profane men would worship God, how often soever they may be drawn
off from their vain trifling, they constantly relapse into it. They admit,
indeed, that sacrifices are not pleasing, to God, unless accompanied with
sincerity of mind; and by this they testify that they have some conception
of spiritual worship, though they immediately pervert it by false devices:
for it is impossible to persuade them that every thing which the law enjoins
on the subject is true. Shall I then extol the discernment of a mind which
can neither acquire wisdom by itself, nor listen to advice?167
As to the precepts of the Second Table, there is considerably more knowledge
of them, inasmuch as they are more closely connected with the preservation
of civil society. Even here, however, there is something defective. Every
man of understanding deems it most absurd to submit to unjust and tyrannical
domination, provided it can by any means be thrown off, and there is but
one opinion among men, that it is the part of an abject and servile mind
to bear it patiently, the part of an honourable and high-spirited mind
to rise up against it. Indeed, the revenge of injuries is not regarded
by philosophers as a vice. But the Lord condemning this too lofty spirit,
prescribes to his people that patience which mankind deem infamous. In
regard to the general observance of the law, concupiscence altogether escapes
our animadversion. For the natural man cannot bear to recognise diseases
in his lusts. The light of nature is stifled sooner than take the first
step into this profound abyss. For, when philosophers class immoderate
movements of the mind among vices, they mean those which break forth and
manifest themselves in grosser forms. Depraved desires, in which the mind
can quietly indulge, they regard as nothing (see
infra, chap. 8
sect. 49).
25. As we have
above animadverted on Plato's error, in ascribing all sins to ignorance,
so we must repudiate the opinion of those who hold that all sins proceed
from preconceived gravity and malice. We know too well from experience
how often we fall, even when our intention is good. Our reason is exposed
to so many forms of delusion, is liable to so many errors, stumbles on
so many obstacles, is entangled by so many snares, that it is ever wandering
from the right direction. Of how little value it is in the sight of God,
in regard to all the parts of life, Paul shows, when he says, that we are
not "sufficient of ourselves to think any thing as of ourselves," (2 Cor.
3:5). He is not speaking of the will or affection; he denies us the power
of thinking aright how any thing cam be duly performed. Is it, indeed,
true, that all thought, intelligence, discernment, and industry, are so
defective, that, in the sight of the Lord, we cannot think or aim at any
thing that is right? To us, who can scarcely bear to part with acuteness
of intellect (in our estimation a most precious endowment), it seems hard
to admit this, whereas it is regarded as most just by the Holy Spirit,
who "knoweth the thoughts of man, that they are vanity," (Ps. 94:11), and
distinctly declares, that "every imagination of the thoughts of his heart
was only evil continually," (Gen. 6:5; 8:21). If every thing which our
mind conceives, meditates plans, and resolves, is always evil, how can
it ever think of doing what is pleasing to God, to whom righteousness and
holiness alone are acceptable? It is thus plain, that our mind, in what
direction soever it turns, is miserably exposed to vanity. David was conscious
of its weakness when he prayed, "Give me understanding, and I shall keep
thy law," (Ps. 119:34). By desiring to obtain a new understanding, he intimates
that his own was by no means sufficient. This he does not once only, but
in one psalm repeats the same prayer almost ten times, the repetition intimating
how strong the necessity which urged him to pray. What he thus asked for
himself alone, Paul prays for the churches in general. "For this cause,"
says he, "we also, since the day we heard it, do not cease to pray for
you, and to desire that ye might be filled with the knowledge of his will,
in all wisdom and spiritual understanding; that you might walk worthy of
the Lord," &c. (Col. 1:9, 10). Whenever he represents this as a blessing
from God, we should remember that he at the same time testifies that it
is not in the power of man. Accordingly, Augustine, in speaking of this
inability of human reason to understand the things of God, says, that he
deems the grace of illumination not less necessary to the mind than the
light of the sun to the eye (August. de Peccat. Merit. et Remiss.
lib. 2 cap. 5). And, not content with this, he modifies his expression,
adding, that we open our eyes to behold the light, whereas the mental eye
remains shut, until it is opened by the Lord. Nor does Scripture say that
our minds are illuminated in a single day, so as afterwards to see of themselves.
The passage, which I lately quoted from the Apostle Paul, refers to continual
progress and increase. David, too, expresses this distinctly in these words:
"With my whole heart have I sought thee: O let me not wander from thy commandments,"
(Ps. 119:10). Though he had been regenerated, and so had made no ordinary
progress in true piety, he confesses that he stood in need of direction
every moment, in order that he might not decline from the knowledge with
which he had been endued. Hence, he elsewhere prays for a renewal of a
right spirit, which he had lost by his sin,168 (Ps. 51:12).
For that which God gave at first, while temporarily withdrawn, it is equally
his province to restore.
26. We must now
examine the will, on which the question of freedom principally turns, the
power of choice belonging to it rather than the intellect, as we have already
seen (supra, sect. 4). And at the outset, to guard against its being
thought that the doctrine taught by philosophers, and generally received--viz.
that all things by natural instinct have a desire of good, is any proof
of the rectitude of the human will,--let us observe, that the power of
free will is not to be considered in any of those desires which proceed
more from instinct than mental deliberation. Even the schoolmen admit (Thomas,
Part 1, Quæst. 83, art. 3), that there is no act of free will,
unless when reason looks at opposites. By this they mean, that the things
desired must be such as may be made the object of choice, and that to pave
the way for choice, deliberation must precede. And, undoubtedly, if you
attend to what this natural desire of good in man is, you will find that
it is common to him with the brutes. They, too, desire what is good; and
when any semblance of good capable of moving the sense appears, they follow
after it. Here, however, man does not, in accordance with the excellence
of his immortal nature, rationally choose, and studiously pursue, what
is truly for his good. He does not admit reason to his counsel, nor exert
his intellect; but without reason, without counsel, follows the bent of
his nature like the lower animals. The question of freedom, therefore,
has nothing to do with the fact of man's being led by natural instinct
to desire good. The question is, Does man, after determining by right reason
what is good, choose what he thus knows, and pursue what he thus chooses?
Lest any doubt should be entertained as to this, we must attend to the
double misnomer. For this appetite is not properly a movement of
the will, but natural inclination; and this good is not one of virtue
or righteousness, but of condition--viz. that the individual may feel comfortable.
In fine, how much soever man may desire to obtain what is good, he does
not follow it. There is no man who would not be pleased with eternal blessedness;
and yet, without the impulse of the Spirit, no man aspires to it. Since,
then, the natural desire of happiness in man no more proves the freedom
of the will, than the tendency in metals and stones to attain the perfection
of their nature, let us consider, in other respects, whether the will is
so utterly vitiated and corrupted in every part as to produce nothing but
evil, or whether it retains some portion uninjured, and productive of good
desires.
27. Those
who ascribe our willing effectually, to the primary grace of Gods (supra,
sect. 6), seem conversely to insinuate that the soul has in itself a power
of aspiring to good, though a power too feeble to rise to solid affection
or active endeavour. There is no doubt that this opinion, adopted from
Origin and certain of the ancient Fathers, has been generally embraced
by the schoolmen, who are wont to apply to man in his natural state (in
puris naturalibus, as they express it) the following description of
the apostle:--"For that which I do I allow not: for what I would, that
do I not; but what I hate, that do I." "To will is present with me; but
how to perform that which is good I find not," (Rom. 7:15, 18). But, in
this way, the whole scope of Paul's discourse is inverted. He is speaking
of the Christian struggle (touched on more briefly in the Epistle to the
Galatians), which believers constantly experience from the conflict between
the flesh and the Spirit. But the Spirit is not from nature, but from regeneration.
That the apostle is speaking of the regenerate is apparent from this, that
after saying, "in me dwells no good thing," he immediately adds the explanation,
"in my flesh." Accordingly, he declares, "It is no more I that do it, but
sin that dwelleth in me." What is the meaning of the correction, "in me
(that is, in my flesh?)" It is just as if he had spoken in this way, No
good thing dwells in me, of myself, for in my flesh nothing good can be
found. Hence follows the species of excuse, It is not I myself that do
evil, but sin that dwelleth in me. This applies to none but the regenerate,
who, with the leading powers of the soul, tend towards what is good. The
whole is made plain by the conclusion, "I delight in the law of God after
the inward man: but I see another law in my members, warring against the
law of my mind," (Rom. 7:22, 23). Who has this struggle in himself, save
those who, regenerated by the Spirit of God, bear about with them the remains
of the flesh? Accordingly, Augustine, who had at one time thought that
the discourse related to the natural man (August. ad Bonifac. lib. 1 c.
10), afterwards retracted his exposition as unsound and inconsistent. And,
indeed if we admit that men, without grace, have any motions to good, however
feeble, what answer shall we give to the apostles who declares that "we
are incapable of thinking a good thought?" (2 Cor. 3:6). What answer shall
we give to the Lord, who declares, by Moses, that "every imagination of
man's heart is only evil continually?" (Gen. 8:21). Since the blunder has
thus arisen from an erroneous view of a single passage, it seems unnecessary
to dwell upon it. Let us rather give due weight to our Saviour's words,
"Whosoever committeth sin is the servant of sin," (John 8:34). We are all
sinners by nature, therefore we are held under the yoke of sin. But if
the whole man is subject to the dominion of sin, surely the will, which
is its principal seat, must be bound with the closest chains. And, indeed,
if divine grace were preceded by any will of ours, Paul could not have
said that "it is God which worketh in us both to will and to do" (Phil.
2:13). Away, then, with all the absurd trifling which many have indulged
in with regard to preparation. Although believers sometimes ask to have
their heart trained to the obedience of the divine law, as David does in
several passages (Ps. 51:12), it is to be observed, that even this longing
in prayer is from God. This is apparent from the language used. When he
prays, "Create in me a clean heart," he certainly does not attribute the
beginning of the creation to himself. Let us therefore rather adopt the
sentiment of Augustine, "God will prevent you in all things, but do you
sometimes prevent his anger. How? Confess that you have all these things
from God, that all the good you have is from him, all the evil from yourself,"
(August. De Verbis Apost. Serm. 10). Shortly after he says "Of our own
we have nothing but sin."
CHAPTER 3.
EVERY THING PROCEEDING FROM THE CORRUPT
NATURE OF MAN DAMNABLE.
The principal matters
in this chapter are--I. A recapitulation of the former chapter, proving,
from passages of Scriptures that the intellect and will of man are so corrupted,
that no integrity, no knowledge or fear of God, can now be found in him,
sect. 1 and 2. II. Objections to this doctrine, from the virtues which
shone in some of the heathen, refuted, sect. 3 and 4. III. What kind of
will remains in man, the slave of sin, sect. 5. The remedy and cure, sect.
6. IV. The opinion of Neo-Pelagian sophists concerning the preparation
and efficacy of the will, and also concerning perseverance and co-operating
grace, refuted, both by reason and Scripture, sect. 7-12. V. Some passages
from Augustine confirming the truth of this doctrine, sect. 13 and 14.
Sections.
1. The intellect and will of the whole
man corrupt. The term flesh applies not only to the sensual, but
also to the higher part of the soul. This demonstrated from Scripture.
2. The heart also involved in corruption,
and hence in no part of man can integrity, or knowledge or the fear of
God, be found.
3. Objection, that some of the heathen
were possessed of admirable endowments, and, therefore, that the nature
of man is not entirely corrupt. Answer, Corruption is not entirely removed,
but only inwardly restrained. Explanation of this answer.
4. Objection still urged, that the
virtuous and vicious among the heathen must be put upon the same level,
or the virtuous prove that human nature, properly cultivated, is not devoid
of virtue. Answer, That these are not ordinary properties of human nature,
but special gifts of God. These gifts defiled by ambition, and hence the
actions proceeding from them, however esteemed by man, have no merit with
God.
5. Though man has still the faculty
of willing there is no soundness in it. He falls under the bondage of sin
necessarily, and yet voluntarily. Necessity must be distinguished from
compulsion. The ancient Theologians acquainted with this necessity. Some
passages condemning the vacillation of Lombard.
6. Conversion to God constitutes
the remedy or soundness of the human will. This not only begun, but continued
and completed; the beginning, continuance, and completion, being ascribed
entirely to God. This proved by Ezekiel's description of the stony heart,
and from other passages of Scripture.
7. Various Objections.--1. The will
is converted by God, but, when once prepared, does its part in the work
of conversion. Answer from Augustine. 2. Grace can do nothing without will,
nor the will without grace. Answer. Grace itself produces will. God prevents
the unwilling, making him willing, and follows up this preventing grace
that he may not will in vain. Another answer gathered from various passages
of Augustine.
8. Answer to the second Objection
continued. No will inclining to good except in the elect. The cause of
election out of man. Hence right will, as well as election, are from the
good pleasure of God. The beginning of willing and doing well is of faith;
faith again is the gift of God; and hence mere grace is the cause of our
beginning to will well. This proved by Scripture.
9. Answer to second Objection continued.
That good will is merely of grace proved by the prayers of saints. Three
axioms 1. God does not prepare man's heart, so that he can afterwards do
some good of himself, but every desire of rectitude, every inclination
to study, and every effort to pursue it, is from Him. 2. This desire, study,
and effort, do not stop short, but continue to effect. 3. This progress
is constant. The believer perseveres to the end. A third Objection, and
three answers to it.
10. A fourth Objection. Answer. Fifth
Objection. Answer. Answer confirmed by many passages of Scripture, and
supported by a passage from Augustine.
11. Perseverance not of ourselves,
but of God. Objection. Two errors in the objection. Refutation of both.
12. An objection founded on the distinction
of co-operating grace. Answer. Answer confirmed by the testimony of Augustine
and Bernard.
13. Last part of the chapter, in
which it is proved by many passages of Augustine, that he held the doctrine
here taught.
14. An objection, representing Augustine
at variance with himself and other Theologians, removed. A summary of Augustine's
doctrine on free will.
1. THE nature of man, in both parts
of his soul--viz. intellect and will--cannot be better ascertained than
by attending to the epithets applied to him in Scripture. If he is fully
depicted (and it may easily be proved that he is) by the words of our Saviour,
"that which is born of the flesh is flesh," (John 3:6), he must be a very
miserable creature. For, as an apostle declares, "to be carnally minded
is death," (Rom. 8:8), "It is enmity against God, and is not subject to
the law of God, neither indeed can be." Is it true that the flesh is so
perverse, that it is perpetually striving with all its might against God?
that it cannot accord with the righteousness of the divine law? that, in
short, it can beget nothing but the materials of death? Grant that there
is nothing in human nature but flesh, and then extract something good out
of it if you can. But it will be said, that the word
flesh applies
only to the sensual, and not to the higher part of the soul. This, however,
is completely refuted by the words both of Christ and his apostle. The
statement of our Lord is, that a man must be born again, because he is
flesh. He requires not to be born again, with reference to the body. But
a mind is not born again merely by having some portion of it reformed.
It must be totally renewed. This is confirmed by the antithesis used in
both passages. In the contrast between the Spirit and the flesh, there
is nothing left of an intermediate nature. In this way, everything in man,
which is not spiritual, falls under the denomination of carnal. But we
have nothing of the Spirit except through regeneration. Everything, therefore,
which we have from nature is flesh. Any possible doubt which might exist
on the subject is removed by the words of Paul (Eph. 4:23), where, after
a description of the old man, who, he says, "is corrupt according to the
deceitful lusts," he bids us "be renewed in the spirit" of our mind. You
see that he places unlawful and depraved desires not in the sensual part
merely, but in the mind itself, and therefore requires that it should be
renewed. Indeed, he had a little before drawn a picture of human nature,
which shows that there is no part in which it is not perverted and corrupted.
For when he says that the "Gentiles walk in the vanity of their mind, having
the understanding darkened being alienated from the life of God through
the ignorance that is in them, because of the blindness of their heart,"
(Eph. 4:17, 18), there can be no doubt that his words apply to all whom
the Lord has not yet formed anew both to wisdom and righteousness. This
is rendered more clear by the comparison which immediately follows, and
by which he reminds believers that they "have not so learned Christ" these
words implying that the grace of Christ is the only remedy for that blindness
and its evil consequences. Thus, too, had Isaiah prophesied of the kingdom
of Christ, when the Lord promised to the Church, that though darkness should
"cover the earth, and gross darkness the people," yet that he should "arise"
upon it, and "his glory" should be seen upon it (Isaiah 40:2). When it
is thus declared that divine light is to arise on the Church alone, all
without the Church is left in blindness and darkness. I will not enumerate
all that occurs throughout Scripture, and particularly in the Psalms and
Prophetical writings, as to the vanity of man. There is much in what David
says, "Surely men of low degree are vanity, and men of high degree are
a lie: to be laid in the balance, they are altogether lighter than vanity,"
(Ps. 62:10). The human mind receives a humbling blow when all the thoughts
which proceed from it are derided as foolish, frivolous, perverse, and
insane.
2. In no degree
more lenient is the condemnation of the heart, when it is described as
"deceitful above all things, and desperately wicked," (Jer. 17:9). But
as I study brevity, I will be satisfied with a single passage, one, however,
in which as in a bright mirror, we may behold a complete image of our nature.
The Apostle, when he would humble man's pride, uses these words: "There
is none righteous no, not one: there is none that understandeth, there
is none that seeketh after God. They are all gone out of the way, they
are together become unprofitable; there is none that does good, no, not
one. Their throat is an open sepulchre; with their tongues they have used
deceit; the poison of asps is under their lips: Whose mouth is full of
cursing and bitterness: their feet are swift to shed blood: destruction
and misery are in their ways: and the way of peace have they not known:
there is no fear of God before their eyes," (Rom. 3:10-18). Thus he thunders
not against certain individuals, but against the whole posterity of Adam--not
against the depraved manners of any single age, but the perpetual corruption
of nature. His object in the passage is not merely to upbraid men in order
that they may repent, but to teach that all are overwhelmed with inevitable
calamity, and can be delivered from it only by the mercy of God. As this
could not be proved without previously proving the overthrow and destruction
of nature, he produced those passages to show that its ruin is complete.
Let it be a fixed
point, then, that men are such as is here described, not by vicious custom,
but by depravity of nature. The reasoning of the Apostle, that there is
no salvation for man, save in the mercy of God, because in himself he is
desperate and undone, could not otherwise stand. I will not here labour
to prove that the passages apply, with the view of removing the doubts
of any who might think them quoted out of place. I will take them as if
they had been used by Paul for the first time, and not taken from the Prophets.
First, then, he strips man of righteousness, that is, integrity and purity;
and, secondly, he strips him of sound intelligence. He argues, that defect
of intelligence is proved by apostasy from God. To seek Him is the beginning
of wisdom, and, therefore, such defect must exist in all who have revolted
from Him. He subjoins, that all have gone astray, and become as it were
mere corruption; that there is none that does good. He then enumerates
the crimes by which those who have once given loose to their wickedness
pollute every member of their bodies. Lastly, he declares that they have
no fear of God, according to whose rule all our steps should be directed.
If these are the hereditary properties of the human race, it is vain to
look for anything good in our nature. I confess indeed, that all these
iniquities do not break out in every individual. Still it cannot be denied
that the hydra lurks in every breast. For as a body, while it contains
and fosters the cause and matter of disease, cannot be called healthy,
although pain is not actually felt; so a soul, while teeming with such
seeds of vice, cannot be called sound. This similitude, however, does not
apply throughout. In a body however morbid the functions of life are performed;
but the soul, when plunged into that deadly abyss, not only labours under
vice, but is altogether devoid of good.
3. Here, again
we are met with a question very much the same as that which was previously
solved. In every age there have been some who, under the guidance of nature,
were all their lives devoted to virtue. It is of no consequence, that many
blots may be detected in their conduct; by the mere study of virtue, they
evinced that there was somewhat of purity in their nature. The value which
virtues of this kind have in the sight of God will be considered more fully
when we treat of the merit of works. Meanwhile however, it will be proper
to consider it in this place also, in so far as necessary for the exposition
of the subject in hand. Such examples, then, seem to warn us against supposing
that the nature of man is utterly vicious, since, under its guidance, some
have not only excelled in illustrious deeds, but conducted themselves most
honourably through the whole course of their lives. But we ought to consider,
that, notwithstanding of the corruption of our nature, there is some room
for divine grace, such grace as, without purifying it, may lay it under
internal restraint. For, did the Lord let every mind loose to wanton in
its lusts, doubtless there is not a man who would not show that his nature
is capable of all the crimes with which Paul charges it (Rom. 3 compared
with Ps. 14:3, &c). What? Can you exempt yourself from the number of
those whose feet are swift to shed blood; whose hands are foul with rapine
and murder; whose throats are like open sepulchres; whose tongues are deceitful;
whose lips are venomous; whose actions are useless, unjust, rotten, deadly;
whose soul is without God; whose inward parts are full of wickedness; whose
eyes are on the watch for deception; whose minds are prepared for insult;
whose every part, in short, is framed for endless deeds of wickedness?
If every soul is capable of such abominations (and the Apostle declares
this boldly), it is surely easy to see what the result would be, if the
Lord were to permit human passion to follow its bent. No ravenous beast
would rush so furiously, no stream, however rapid and violent, so impetuously
burst its banks. In the elect, God cures these diseases in the mode which
will shortly be explained; in others, he only lays them under such restraint
as may prevent them from breaking forth to a degree incompatible with the
preservation of the established order of things. Hence, how much soever
men may disguise their impurity, some are restrained only by shame, others
by a fear of the laws, from breaking out into many kinds of wickedness.
Some aspire to an honest life, as deeming it most conducive to their interest,
while others are raised above the vulgar lot, that, by the dignity of their
station, they may keep inferiors to their duty. Thus God, by his providence,
curbs the perverseness of nature, preventing it from breaking forth into
action, yet without rendering it inwardly pure.
4. The objection,
however, is not yet solved. For we must either put Cataline on the same
footing with Camillus, or hold Camillus to be an example that nature, when
carefully cultivated, is not wholly void of goodness. I admit that the
specious qualities which Camillus possessed were divine gifts, and appear
entitled to commendation when viewed in themselves. But in what way will
they be proofs of a virtuous nature? Must we not go back to the mind, and
from it begin to reason thus? If a natural man possesses such integrity
of manners, nature is not without the faculty of studying virtue. But what
if his mind was depraved and perverted, and followed anything rather than
rectitude? Such it undoubtedly was, if you grant that he was only a natural
man. How then will you laud the power of human nature for good, if, even
where there is the highest semblance of integrity, a corrupt bias is always
detected? Therefore, as you would not commend a man for virtue whose vices
impose upon you by a show of virtue, so you will not attribute a power
of choosing rectitude to the human will while rooted in depravity (see
August. lib. 4, Cont. Julian). Still, the surest and easiest answer to
the objection is, that those are not common endowments of nature, but special
gifts of God, which he distributes in divers forms, and, in a definite
measure, to men otherwise profane. For which reason, we hesitate not, in
common language, to say, that one is of a good, another of a vicious nature;
though we cease not to hold that both are placed under the universal condition
of human depravity. All we mean is that God has conferred on the one a
special grace which he has not seen it meet to confer on the other. When
he was pleased to set Saul over the kingdom, he made him as it were a new
man. This is the thing meant by Plato, when, alluding to a passage in the
Iliad, he says, that the children of kings are distinguished at their birth
by some special qualities--God, in kindness to the human race, often giving
a spirit of heroism to those whom he destines for empire. In this way,
the great leaders celebrated in history were formed. The same judgment
must be given in the case of private individuals. But as those endued with
the greatest talents were always impelled by the greatest ambitions (a
stain which defiles all virtues and makes them lose all favour in the sight
of God), so we cannot set any value on anything that seems praiseworthy
in ungodly men. We may add, that the principal part of rectitude is wanting,
when there is no zeal for the glory of God, and there is no such zeal in
those whom he has not regenerated by his Spirit. Nor is it without good
cause said in Isaiah, that on Christ should rest "the spirit of knowledge,
and of the fear of the Lord," (Isa. 11:2); for by this we are taught that
all who are strangers to Christ are destitute of that fear of God which
is the beginning of wisdom (Ps. 111:10). The virtues which deceive us by
an empty show may have their praise in civil society and the common intercourse
of life, but before the judgment-seat of God they will be of no value to
establish a claim of righteousness.
5. When the will
is enchained as the slave of sin, it cannot make a movement towards goodness,
far less steadily pursue it. Every such movement is the first step in that
conversion to God, which in Scripture is entirely ascribed to divine grace.
Thus Jeremiah prays, "Turn thou me, and I shall be turned," (Jer. 31:18).
Hence, too, in the same chapter, describing the spiritual redemption of
believers, the Prophet says, "The Lord has redeemed Jacob, and ransomed
him from the hand of him that was stronger than he," (Jer. 31:11); intimating
how close the fetters are with which the sinner is bound, so long as he
is abandoned by the Lord, and acts under the yoke of the devil. Nevertheless,
there remains a will which both inclines and hastens on with the strongest
affection towards sin; man, when placed under this bondage, being deprived
not of will, but of soundness of will. Bernard says not improperly, that
all of us have a will; but to will well is proficiency, to will ill is
defect. Thus simply to will is the part of man, to will ill the part of
corrupt nature, to will well the part of grace. Moreover, when I say that
the will, deprived of liberty, is led or dragged by necessity to evil,
it is strange that any should deem the expression harsh, seeing there is
no absurdity in it, and it is not at variance with pious use. It does,
however, offend those who know not how to distinguish between necessity
and compulsion. Were any one to ask them, Is not God necessarily good,
is not the devil necessarily wicked, what answer would they give? The goodness
of God is so connected with his Godhead, that it is not more necessary
to be God than to be good; whereas the devil, by his fall, was so estranged
from goodness, that he can do nothing but evil. Should any one give utterance
to the profane jeer (see Calvin Adv. Pighium), that little praise is due
to God for a goodness to which he is forced, is it not obvious to every
man to reply, It is owing not to violent impulse, but to his boundless
goodness, that he cannot do evil? Therefore, if the free will of God in
doing good is not impeded, because he necessarily must do good; if the
devil, who can do nothing but evil, nevertheless sins voluntarily; can
it be said that man sins less voluntarily because he is under a necessity
of sinning? This necessity is uniformly proclaimed by Augustine, who, even
when pressed by the invidious cavil of Celestius, hesitated not to assert
it in the following terms: "Man through liberty became a sinner, but corruption,
ensuing as the penalty, has converted liberty into necessity," (August.
lib. de Perf. Justin). Whenever mention is made of the subject, he hesitates
not to speak in this way of the necessary bondage of sin (August. de Nature
et Gratia, et alibi). Let this, then, be regarded as the sum of the distinction.
Man, since he was corrupted by the fall, sins not forced or unwilling,
but voluntarily, by a most forward bias of the mind; not by violent compulsion,
or external force, but by the movement of his own passion; and yet such
is the depravity of his nature, that he cannot move and act except in the
direction of evil. If this is true, the thing not obscurely expressed is,
that he is under a necessity of sinning. Bernard, assenting to Augustine,
thus writes: "Among animals, man alone is free, and yet sin intervening,
he suffers a kind of violence, but a violence proceeding from his will,
not from nature, so that it does not even deprive him of innate liberty,"
(Bernard, Sermo. super Cantica, 81). For that which is voluntary is also
free. A little after he adds, "Thus, by some means strange and wicked,
the will itself, being deteriorated by sin, makes a necessity; but so that
the necessity, in as much as it is voluntary, cannot excuse the will, and
the will, in as much as it is enticed, cannot exclude the necessity." For
this necessity is in a manner voluntary. He afterwards says that "we are
under a yoke, but no other yoke than that of voluntary servitude; therefore,
in respect of servitude, we are miserable, and in respect of will, inexcusable;
because the will, when it was free, made itself the slave of sin." At length
he concludes, "Thus the soul, in some strange and evil way, is held under
this kind of voluntary, yet sadly free necessity, both bond and free; bond
in respect of necessity, free in respect of will: and what is still more
strange, and still more miserable, it is guilty because free, and enslaved
because guilty, and therefore enslaved because free." My readers hence
perceive that the doctrine which I deliver is not new, but the doctrine
which of old Augustine delivered with the consent of all the godly, and
which was afterwards shut up in the cloisters of monks for almost a thousand
years. Lombard, by not knowing how to distinguish between necessity and
compulsion, gave occasion to a pernicious error.169
6. On the other
hand, it may be proper to consider what the remedy is which divine grace
provides for the correction and cure of natural corruption. Since the Lord,
in bringing assistance, supplies us with what is lacking, the nature of
that assistance will immediately make manifest its converse--viz. our penury.
When the Apostle says to the Philippians, "Being confident of this very
thing, that he which has begun a good work in you, will perform it until
the day of Jesus Christ," (Phil. 1:6), there cannot be a doubt, that by
the good work thus begun, he means the very commencement of conversion
in the will. God, therefore, begins the good work in us by exciting in
our hearts a desire, a love, and a study of righteousness, or (to speak
more correctly) by turning, training, and guiding our hearts unto righteousness;
and he completes this good work by confirming us unto perseverance. But
lest any one should cavil that the good work thus begun by the Lord consists
in aiding the will, which is in itself weak, the Spirit elsewhere declares
what the will, when left to itself, is able to do. His words are, "A new
heart also will I give you, and a new spirit will I put within you: and
I will take away the stony heart out of your flesh, and I will give you
an heart of flesh. And I will put my Spirit within you, and cause you to
walk in my statutes, and ye shall keep my judgments, and do them," (Ezek.
36:26, 27). How can it be said that the weakness of the human will is aided
so as to enable it to aspire effectually to the choice of good, when the
fact is, that it must be wholly transformed and renovated? If there is
any softness in a stone; if you can make it tender, and flexible into any
shape, then it may be said, that the human heart may be shaped for rectitude,
provided that which is imperfect in it is supplemented by divine grace.
But if the Spirit, by the above similitude, meant to show that no good
can ever be extracted from our heart until it is made altogether new, let
us not attempt to share with Him what He claims for himself alone. If it
is like turning a stone into flesh when God turns us to the study of rectitude,
everything proper to our own will is abolished, and that which succeeds
in its place is wholly of God. I say the will is abolished, but not in
so far as it is will, for in conversion everything essential to our original
nature remains: I also say, that it is created anew, not because the will
then begins to exist, but because it is turned from evil to good. This,
I maintains is wholly the work of God, because, as the Apostle testifies,
we are not "sufficient of ourselves to think any thing as of ourselves,"
(2 Cor. 3:5). Accordingly, he elsewhere says, not merely that God assists
the weak or corrects the depraved will, but that he worketh in us to will
(Phil. 2:13). From this it is easily inferred, as I have said, that everything
good in the will is entirely the result of grace. In the same sense, the
Apostle elsewhere says, "It is the same God which worketh all in all,"
(I Cor. 12:6). For he is not there treating of universal government, but
declaring that all the good qualities which believers possess are due to
God. In using the term "all," he certainly makes God the author of spiritual
life from its beginning to its end. This he had previously taught in different
terms, when he said that there is "one Lord Jesus Christ, by whom are all
things, and we by him," (1 Cor. 8:6); thus plainly extolling the new creation,
by which everything of our common nature is destroyed. There is here a
tacit antithesis between Adam and Christ, which he elsewhere explains more
clearly when he says, "We are his workmanship, created in Christ Jesus
unto good works, which God has before ordained that we should walk in them,"
(Eph. 2:10). His meaning is to show in this way that our salvation is gratuitous
because the beginning of goodness is from the second creation which is
obtained in Christ. If any, even the minutest, ability were in ourselves,
there would also be some merit. But to show our utter destitution, he argues
that we merit nothing, because we are created in Christ Jesus unto good
works, which God has prepared; again intimating by these words, that all
the fruits of good works are originally and immediately from God. Hence
the Psalmist, after saying that the Lord "has made us," to deprive us of
all share in the work, immediately adds, "not we ourselves." That he is
speaking of regeneration, which is the commencement of the spiritual life,
is obvious from the context, in which the next words are, "we are his people,
and the sheep of his pasture," (Psalm 100:3). Not contented with simply
giving God the praise of our salvation, he distinctly excludes us from
all share in it, just as if he had said that not one particle remains to
man as a ground of boasting. The whole is of God.
7. But perhaps
there will be some who, while they admit that the will is in its own nature
averse to righteousness, and is converted solely by the power of God, will
yet hold that, when once it is prepared, it performs a part in acting.
This they found upon the words of Augustine, that grace precedes every
good work; the will accompanying, not leading; a handmaid, and not a guide
(August. ad Bonifac. Ep. 106). The words thus not improperly used by this
holy writer, Lombard preposterously wrests to the above effect (Lombard,
lib. 2, Dist. 25). But I maintain, that as well in the words of the Psalmist
which I have quoted, as in other passages of Scripture, two things are
clearly taught--viz. that the Lord both corrects, or rather destroys, our
depraved will, and also substitutes a good will from himself. In as much
as it is prevented by grace, I have no objection to your calling it a handmaid;
but in as much as when formed again, it is the work of the Lord, it is
erroneous to say, that it accompanies preventing grace as a voluntary attendant.
Therefore, Chrysostom is inaccurate in saying, that grace cannot do any
thing without will, nor will any thing without grace (Serm. de Invent.
Sanct. Crucis); as if grace did not, in terms of the passage lately quoted
from Paul, produce the very will itself. The intention of Augustine, in
calling the human will the handmaid of grace, was not to assign it a kind
of second place to grace in the performance of good works. His object merely
was to refute the pestilential dogma of Pelagius, who made human merit
the first cause of salvation. As was sufficient for his purpose at the
time, he contends that grace is prior to all merit, while, in the meantime,
he says nothing of the other question as to the perpetual effect of grace,
which, however, he handles admirably in other places. For in saying, as
he often does, that the Lord prevents the unwilling in order to make him
willing, and follows after the willing that he may not will in vain, he
makes Him the sole author of good works. Indeed, his sentiments on this
subject are too clear to need any lengthened illustration. "Men," says
he, "labour to find in our will something that is our own, and not God's;
how they can find it, I wot not," (August. de Remiss. Peccat., lib. 2 c.
18). In his First Book against Pelagius and Celestius, expounding the saying
of Christ, "Every man therefore that has heard, and has learned of the
Father, cometh unto me," (John 6:45), he says, "The will is aided not only
so as to know what is to be done, but also to do what it knows." And thus,
when God teaches not by the letter of the Law, but by the grace of the
Spirit, he so teaches, that every one who has learned, not only knowing,
sees, but also willing, desires, and acting, performs.
8. Since we are
now occupied with the chief point on which the controversy turns, let us
give the reader the sum of the matter in a few, and those most unambiguous,
passages of Scripture; thereafter, lest any one should charge us with distorting
Scripture, let us show that the truth, which we maintain to be derived
from Scripture, is not unsupported by the testimony of this holy man (I
mean Augustine). I deem it unnecessary to bring forward every separate
passage of Scripture in confirmation of my doctrine. A selection of the
most choice passages will pave the way for the understanding of all those
which lie scattered up and down in the sacred volume. On the other hand,
I thought it not out of place to show my accordance with a man whose authority
is justly of so much weight in the Christian world. It is certainly easy
to prove that the commencement of good is only with God, and that none
but the elect have a will inclined to good. But the cause of election must
be sought out of man; and hence it follows that a right will is derived
not from man himself, but from the same good pleasure by which we were
chosen before the creation of the world. Another argument much akin to
this may be added. The beginning of right will and action being of faith,
we must see whence faith itself is. But since Scripture proclaims throughout
that it is the free gift of God, it follows, that when men, who are with
their whole soul naturally prone to evil, begin to have a good will, it
is owing to mere grace. Therefore, when the Lord, in the conversion of
his people, sets down these two things as requisite to be done--viz. to
take away the heart of stone, and give a heart of flesh, he openly declares,
that, in order to our conversion to righteousness, what is ours must be
taken away, and that what is substituted in its place is of himself. Nor
does he declare this in one passage only. For he says in Jeremiah "I will
give them one heart, and one way, that they may fear me for ever;" and
a little after he says, "I will put my fear in their hearts, that they
shall not depart from me," (Jer. 32:39, 40). Again, in Ezekiel, "I will
give them one heart, and I will put a new spirit within you; and I will
take the stony heart out of their flesh, and will give them an heart of
flesh," (Ezek. 11:19). He could not more clearly claim to himself, and
deny to us, everything good and right in our will, than by declaring, that
in our conversion there is the creation of a new spirit and a new heart.
It always follows, both that nothing good can proceed from our will until
it be formed again, and that after it is formed again in so far as it is
good, it is of God, and not of us.
9. With this
view, likewise the prayers of the saints correspond. Thus Solomon prays
that the Lord may "incline our hearts unto him, to walk in his ways, and
keep his commandments" (1 Kings 8:58); intimating that our heart is perverse,
and naturally indulges in rebellion against the Divine law, until it be
turned. Again, it is said in the Psalms, "Incline my heart unto thy testimonies,"
(Ps. 119:36). For we should always note the antithesis between the rebellious
movement of the heart, and the correction by which it is subdued to obedience.
David feeling for the time that he was deprived of directing grace, prays,
"Create in me a clean heart, O God; and renew a right spirit within me,"
(Ps. 51:10). Is not this an acknowledgment that all the parts of the heart
are full of impurity, and that the soul has received a twist, which has
turned it from straight to crooked? And then, in describing the cleansing,
which he earnestly demands as a thing to be created by God, does he not
ascribe the work entirely to Him? If it is objected, that the prayer itself
is a symptom of a pious and holy affection, it is easy to reply, that although
David had already in some measure repented, he was here contrasting the
sad fall which he had experienced with his former state. Therefore, speaking
in the person of a man alienated from God, he properly prays for the blessings
which God bestows upon his elect in regeneration. Accordingly, like one
dead, he desires to be created anew, so as to become, instead of a slave
of Satan, an instrument of the Holy Spirit. Strange and monstrous are the
longings of our pride. There is nothing which the Lord enjoins more strictly
than the religious observance of his Sabbath, in other words resting from
our works; but in nothing do we show greater reluctance than to renounce
our own works, and give due place to the works of God. Did not arrogance
stand in the way, we could not overlook the clear testimony which Christ
has borne to the efficacy of his grace. "I," said he, "am the true vine,
and my Father is the husband man." "As the branch cannot bear fruit of
itself, except it abide in the vine; no more can ye, except ye abide in
me," (John 15:1, 4). If we can no more bear fruit of ourselves than a vine
can bud when rooted up and deprived of moisture, there is no longer any
room to ask what the aptitude of our nature is for good. There is no ambiguity
in the conclusion, "For without me ye can do nothing." He says not that
we are too weak to suffice for ourselves; but, by reducing us to nothing,
he excludes the idea of our possessing any, even the least ability. If,
when engrafted into Christ, we bear fruit like the vine, which draws its
vegetative power from the moisture of the ground, and the dew of heaven,
and the fostering warmth of the sun, I see nothing in a good work, which
we can call our own, without trenching upon what is due to God. It is vain
to have recourse to the frivolous cavil, that the sap and the power of
producing are already contained in the vine, and that, therefore, instead
of deriving everything from the earth or the original root, it contributes
something of its own. Our Saviour's words simply mean, that when separated
from him, we are nothing but dry, useless wood, because, when so separated,
we have no power to do good, as he elsewhere says, "Every plant which my
heavenly Father has not planted, shall be rooted up," (Mt. 15:13). Accordingly,
in the passage already quoted from the Apostle Paul, he attributes the
whole operation to God, "It is God which worketh in you both to will and
to do of his good pleasure," (Phil. 2:13). The first part of a good work
is the will, the second is vigorous effort in the doing of it.170
God is the author of both. It is, therefore, robbery from God to arrogate
anything to ourselves, either in the will or the act. Were it said that
God gives assistance to a weak will, something might be left us; but when
it is said that he makes the will, every thing good in it is placed without
us. Moreover, since even a good will is still weighed down by the burden
of the flesh, and prevented from rising, it is added, that, to meet the
difficulties of the contest, God supplies the persevering effort until
the effect is obtained. Indeed, the Apostle could not otherwise have said,
as he elsewhere does, that "it is the same God which worketh all in all,"
(1 Cor. 12:6); words comprehending, as we have already observed (sec. 6),
the whole course of the spiritual life. For which reason, David, after
praying, "Teach me thy way, O Lord, I will walk in thy truths" adds, "unite
my heart to fear thy name," (Ps. 86:11); by these words intimating, that
even those who are well-affected are liable to so many distractions that
they easily become vain, and fall away, if not strengthened to persevere.
And hence, in another passage, after praying, "Order my steps in thy word,"
he requests that strength also may be given him to carry on the war, "Let
not any iniquity have dominion over me," (Ps. 119:133). In this way, the
Lord both begins and perfects the good work in us, so that it is due to
Him, first, that the will conceives a love of rectitude, is inclined to
desire, is moved and stimulated to pursue it; secondly, that this choice,
desire, and endeavour fail not, but are carried forward to effect; and,
lastly, that we go on without interruption, and persevere even to the end.
10. This movement
of the will is not of that description which was for many ages taught and
believed--viz. a movement which thereafter leaves us the choice to obey
or resist it, but one which affects us efficaciously. We must, therefore,
repudiate the oft-repeated sentiment of Chrysostom, "Whom he draws, he
draws willingly;" insinuating that the Lord only stretches out his hand,
and waits to see whether we will be pleased to take his aid. We grant that,
as man was originally constituted, he could incline to either side, but
since he has taught us by his example how miserable a thing free will is
if God works not in us to will and to do, of what use to us were grace
imparted in such scanty measure? Nay, by our own ingratitude, we obscure
and impair divine grace. The Apostle's doctrine is not, that the grace
of a good will is offered to us if we will accept of it, but that God himself
is pleased so to work in us as to guide, turn, and govern our heart by
his Spirit, and reign in it as his own possession. Ezekiel promises that
a new spirit will be given to the elect, not merely that they may be able
to walk in his precepts, but that they may really walk in them (Ezek. 11:19;
36:27). And the only meaning which can be given to our Saviour's words,
"Every man, therefore, that has heard and learned of the Father, cometh
unto me," (John 6:45), is, that the grace of God is effectual in itself.
This Augustine maintains in his book De Prædestinatione Sancta. This
grace is not bestowed on all promiscuously, according to the common brocard
(of Occam, if I mistake not), that it is not denied to any one who does
what in him lies. Men are indeed to be taught that the favour of God is
offered, without exception, to all who ask it; but since those only begin
to ask whom heaven by grace inspires, even this minute portion of praise
must not be withheld from him. It is the privilege of the elect to be regenerated
by the Spirit of God, and then placed under his guidance and government.
Wherefore Augustine justly derides some who arrogate to themselves a certain
power of willing, as well as censures others who imagine that that which
is a special evidence of gratuitous election is given to all (August. de
Verbis Apost. Serm. 21). He says, "Nature is common to all, but not grace;"
and he calls it a showy acuteness "which shines by mere vanity, when that
which God bestows, on whom he will is attributed generally to all." Elsewhere
he says, "How came you? By believing. Fear, lest by arrogating to yourself
the merit of finding the right way, you perish from the right way. I came,
you say, by free choice, came by my own will. Why do you boast? Would you
know that even this was given you? Hear Christ exclaiming, `No man comets
unto me, except the Father which has sent me draw him.' " And from the
words of John (6:44), he infers it to be an incontrovertible fact, that
the hearts of believers are so effectually governed from above, that they
follow with undeviating affection. "Whosoever is born of God does not commit
sin; for his seed remaineth in him" (I John 3:9). That intermediate movement
which the sophists imagine, a movement which every one is free to obey
or to reject, is obviously excluded by the doctrine of effectual perseverance.171
11. As to perseverance,
it would undoubtedly have been regarded as the gratuitous gift of God,
had not the very pernicious error prevailed, that it is bestowed in proportion
to human merit, according to the reception which each individual gives
to the first grace. This having given rise to the idea that it was entirely
in our own power to receive or reject the offered grace of God, that idea
is no sooner exploded than the error founded on it must fall. The error,
indeed, is twofold. For, besides teaching that our gratitude for the first
grace and our legitimate use of it is rewarded by subsequent supplies of
grace, its abettors add that, after this, grace does not operate alone,
but only co-operates with ourselves. As to the former, we must hold that
the Lord, while he daily enriches his servants, and loads them with new
gifts of his grace, because he approves of and takes pleasure in the work
which he has begun, finds that in them which he may follow up with larger
measures of grace. To this effect are the sentences, "To him that has shall
be given." "Well done, good and faithful servant: thou hast been faithful
over a few things, I will make thee ruler over many things," (Mt. 25:21,
23, 29; Luke 19:17, 26). But here two precautions are necessary. It must
not be said that the legitimate use of the first grace is rewarded by subsequent
measures of grace, as if man rendered the grace of God effectual by his
own industry, nor must it be thought that there is any such remuneration
as to make it cease to be the gratuitous grace of God. I admit, then, that
believers may expect as a blessing from God, that the better the use they
make of previous, the larger the supplies they will receive of future grace;
but I say that even this use is of the Lord, and that this remuneration
is bestowed freely of mere good will. The trite distinction of operating
and co-operating grace is employed no less sinistrously than unhappily.
Augustine, indeed, used it, but softened it by a suitable definition--viz.
that God, by co-operating, perfects what he begins by operating,--that
both graces are the same, but obtain different names from the different
manner in which they produce their effects. Whence it follows, that he
does not make an apportionment between God and man, as if a proper movement
on the part of each produced a mutual concurrence. All he does is to mark
a multiplication of grace. To this effect, accordingly, he elsewhere says,
that in man good will precedes many gifts from God; but among these gifts
is this good will itself. (August. Enchiridion ad Laurent. cap.
32). Whence it follows, that nothing is left for the will to arrogate as
its own. This Paul has expressly stated. For, after saying, "It is God
which worketh in you both to will and to do," he immediately adds, "of
his good pleasure," (Phil. 2:13); indicating by this expression, that the
blessing is gratuitous. As to the common saying, that after we have given
admission to the first grace, our efforts co-operate with subsequent grace,
this is my answer:--If it is meant that after we are once subdued by the
power of the Lord to the obedience of righteousness, we proceed voluntarily,
and are inclined to follow the movement of grace, I have nothing to object.
For it is most certain, that where the grace of God reigns, there is also
this readiness to obey. And whence this readiness, but just that the Spirit
of God being everywhere consistent with himself, after first begetting
a principle of obedience, cherishes and strengthens it for perseverance?
If, again, it is meant that man is able of himself to be a fellow-labourer
with the grace of God, I hold it to be a most pestilential delusion.
12. In support
of this view, some make an ignorant and false application of the Apostle's
words: "I laboured more abundantly than they all: yet not I, but the grace
of God which was with me," (1 Cor. 15:10). The meaning they give them is,
that as Paul might have seemed to speak somewhat presumptuously in preferring
himself to all the other apostles, he corrects the expression so far by
referring the praise to the grace of God, but he, at the same time, calls
himself a co-operator with grace. It is strange that this should have proved
a stumbling-block to so many writers, otherwise respectable. The Apostle
says not that the grace of God laboured with him so as to make him a co-partner
in the labour. He rather transfers the whole merit of the labour to grace
alone, by thus modifying his first expression, "It was not I," says he,
"that laboured, but the grace of God that was present with me." Those who
have adopted the erroneous interpretation have been misled by an ambiguity
in the expression, or rather by a preposterous translation, in which the
force of the Greek article is overlooked. For to take the words literally,
the Apostle does not say that grace was a fellow-worker with him, but that
the grace which was with him was sole worker. And this is taught not obscurely,
though briefly, by Augustine when he says, "Good will in man precedes many
gifts from God, but not all gifts, seeing that the will which precedes
is itself among the number." He adds the reason, "for it is written, `the
God of my mercy shall prevent me,' (Ps. 59:10), and `Surely goodness and
mercy shall follow me,' (Ps. 23:6); it prevents him that is unwilling,
and makes him willing; it follows him that is willing, that he may not
will in vain." To this Bernard assents, introducing the Church as praying
thus, "Draw me, who am in some measure unwilling, and make me willing;
draw me, who am sluggishly lagging, and make me run," (Serm. 2 in Cantic).
13. Let us now
hear Augustine in his own words, lest the Pelagians of our age, I mean
the sophists of the Sorbonne, charge us after their wont with being opposed
to all antiquity. In this indeed they imitate their father Pelagius, by
whom of old a similar charge was brought against Augustine. In the second
chapter of his Treatise De Correptione et Gratis, addressed to Valentinus,
Augustine explains at length what I will state briefly, but in his own
words, that to Adam was given the grace of persevering in goodness if he
had the will; to us it is given to will, and by will overcome concupiscence:
that Adam, therefore, had the power if he had the will, but did not will
to have the power, whereas to us is given both the will and the power;
that the original freedom of man was to be able not to sin, but that we
have a much greater freedom--viz. not to be able to sin. And lest it should
be supposed, as Lombard erroneously does (lib. 2 Dist. 25), that he is
speaking of the perfection of the future state, he shortly after removes
all doubt when he says, "For so much is the will of the saints inflamed
by the Holy Spirit, that they are able, because they are willing; and willing,
because God worketh in them so to will." For if, in such weakness (in which,
however, to suppress pride, "strength" must be made "perfect,") their own
will is left to them, in such sense that, by the help of God, they are
able, if they will, while at the same time God does not work in them so
as to make them will; among so many temptations and infirmities the will
itself would give way, and, consequently, they would not be able to persevere.
Therefore, to meet the infirmity of the human will, and prevent it from
failing, how weak soever it might be, divine grace was made to act on it
inseparably and uninterruptedly. Augustine (ibid. cap. 14). next entering
fully into the question, how our hearts follow the movement when God affects
them, necessarily says, indeed, that the Lord draws men by their own wills;
wills, however, which he himself has produced. We have now an attestation
by Augustine to the truth which we are specially desirous to maintain--viz.
that the grace offered by the Lord is not merely one which every individual
has full liberty of choosing to receive or reject, but a grace which produces
in the heart both choice and will: so that all the good works which follow
after are its fruit and effect; the only will which yields obedience being
the will which grace itself has made. In another place, Augustine uses
these words, "Every good work in us is performed only by grace," (August.
Ep. 105).
14. In saying
elsewhere that the will is not taken away by grace, but out of bad is changed
into good, and after it is good is assisted,--he only means, that man is
not drawn as if by an extraneous impulse172 without the movement
of the heart, but is inwardly affected so as to obey from the heart. Declaring
that grace is given specially and gratuitously to the elect, he writes
in this way to Boniface: "We know that Divine grace is not given to all
men, and that to those to whom it is given, it is not given either according
to the merit of works, or according to the merit of the will, but by free
grace: in regard to those to whom it is not given, we know that the not
giving of it is a just judgment from God," (August. ad Bonifac. Ep. 106).
In the same epistle, he argues strongly against the opinion of those who
hold that subsequent grace is given to human merit as a reward for not
rejecting the first grace. For he presses Pelagius to confess that gratuitous
grace is necessary to us for every action, and that merely from the fact
of its being truly grace, it cannot be the recompense of works. But the
matter cannot be more briefly summed up than in the eighth chapter of his
Treatise De Correptione et Gratia, where he shows, First, that human
will does not by liberty obtain grace, but by grace obtains liberty.
Secondly,
that by means of the same grace, the heart being impressed with a feeling
of delight, is trained to persevere, and strengthened with invincible fortitude.
Thirdly,
that while grace governs the will, it never falls; but when grace abandons
it, it falls forthwith. Fourthly, that by the free mercy of God,
the will is turned to good, and when turned, perseveres.
Fifthly,
that the direction of the will to good, and its constancy after being so
directed, depend entirely on the will of God, and not on any human merit.
Thus the will (free will, if you choose to call it so), which is left to
man, is, as he in another place (Ep. 46) describes it, a will which can
neither be turned to God, nor continue in God, unless by grace; a will
which, whatever its ability may be, derives all that ability from grace.
CHAPTER 4.
HOW GOD WORKS IN THE HEARTS OF MEN.
The leading points discussed
in this chapter are, I. Whether in bad actions anything is to be attributed
to God; if anything, how much. Also, what is to be attributed to the devil
and to man, sec. 1-5. II. In indifferent matters, how much is to be attributed
to God, and how much is left to man, sec. 6. III. Two objections refuted,
sec. 7, 8.
Sections.
1. Connection of this chapter with
the preceding. Augustine's similitude of a good and bad rider. Question
answered in respect to the devil.
2. Question answered in respect to
God and man. Example from the history of Job. The works of God distinguished
from the works of Satan and wicked men. 1. By the design or end of acting.
How Satan acts in the reprobate. 2. How God acts in them.
3. Old Objection, that the agency
of God in such cases is referable to prescience or permission, not actual
operation. Answer, showing that God blinds and hardens the reprobate, and
this in two ways; 1. By deserting them; 2. By delivering them over to Satan.
4. Striking passages of Scripture,
proving that God acts in both ways, and disposing of the objection with
regard to prescience. Confirmation from Augustine.
5. A modification of the former answer,
proving that God employs Satan to instigate the reprobate, but, at the
same time, is free from all taint.
6. How God works in the hearts of
men in indifferent matters. Our will in such matters not so free as to
be exempt from the overruling providence of God. This confirmed by various
examples.
7. Objection, that these examples
do not form the rule. An answer, fortified by the testimony of universal
experience, by Scripture, and a passage of Augustine.
8. Some, in arguing against the error
of free will, draw an argument from the event. How this is to be understood.
1. THAT man is so enslaved by the
yoke of sin, that he cannot of his own nature aim at good either in wish
or actual pursuit, has, I think, been sufficiently proved. Moreover, a
distinction has been drawn between compulsion and necessity, making it
clear that man, though he sins necessarily, nevertheless sins voluntarily.
But since, from his being brought into bondage to the devil, it would seem
that he is actuated more by the devil's will than his own, it is necessary,
first, to explain what the agency of each is, and then solve the question,173
Whether in bad actions anything is to be attributed to God, Scripture intimating
that there is some way in which he interferes? Augustine (in Psalm 31 and
33) compares the human will to a horse preparing to start, and God and
the devil to riders. "If God mounts, he, like a temperate and skilful rider,
guides it calmly, urges it when too slow, reins it in when too fast, curbs
its forwardness and over-action, checks its bad temper, and keeps it on
the proper course; but if the devil has seized the saddle, like an ignorant
and rash rider, he hurries it over broken ground, drives it into ditches,
dashes it over precipices, spurs it into obstinacy or fury." With this
simile, since a better does not occur, we shall for the present be contented.
When it is said, then, that the will of the natural man is subject to the
power of the devil, and is actuated by him, the meaning is not that the
wills while reluctant and resisting, is forced to submit (as masters oblige
unwilling slaves to execute their orders), but that, fascinated by the
impostures of Satan, it necessarily yields to his guidance, and does him
homage. Those whom the Lord favours not with the direction of his Spirit,
he, by a righteous judgment, consigns to the agency of Satan. Wherefore,
the Apostle says, that "the god of this world has blinded the minds of
them which believe not, lest the light of the glorious gospel of Christ,
who is the image of God, should shine into them." And, in another passage,
he describes the devil as "the spirit that now worketh in the children
of disobedience," (Eph. 2:2). The blinding of the wicked, and all the iniquities
consequent upon it, are called the works of Satan; works the cause of which
is not to be Sought in anything external to the will of man, in which the
root of the evil lies, and in which the foundation of Satan's kingdom,
in other words, sin, is fixed.
2. The nature
of the divine agency in such cases is very different. For the purpose of
illustration, let us refer to the calamities brought upon holy Job by the
Chaldeans. They having slain his shepherds, carry off his flocks. The wickedness
of their deed is manifest,174 as is also the hand of Satan,
who, as the history informs us, was the instigator of the whole. Job, however,
recognises it as the work of God, saying, that what the Chaldeans had plundered,
"the Lord" had "taken away." How can we attribute the same work to God,
to Satan, and to man, without either excusing Satan by the interference
of God, or making God the author of the crime? This is easily done, if
we look first to the end, and then to the mode of acting. The Lord designs
to exercise the patience of his servant by adversity; Satan's plan is to
drive him to despair; while the Chaldeans are bent on making unlawful gain
by plunder. Such diversity of purpose makes a wide distinction in the act.
In the mode there is not less difference. The Lord permits Satan to afflict
his servant; and the Chaldeans, who had been chosen as the ministers to
execute the deed, he hands over to the impulses of Satan, who, pricking
on the already depraved Chaldeans with his poisoned darts, instigates them
to commit the crime. They rush furiously on to the unrighteous deed, and
become its guilty perpetrators. Here Satan is properly said to act in the
reprobate, over whom he exercises his sway, which is that of wickedness.
God also is said to act in his own way; because even Satan when he is the
instrument of divine wrath, is completely under the command of God, who
turns him as he will in the execution of his just judgments. I say nothing
here of the universal agency of God, which, as it sustains all the creatures,
also gives them all their power of acting. I am now speaking only of that
special agency which is apparent in every act. We thus see that there is
no inconsistency in attributing the same act to God, to Satan, and to man,
while, from the difference in the end and mode of action, the spotless
righteousness of God shines forth at the same time that the iniquity of
Satan and of man is manifested in all its deformity.
3. Ancient writers
sometimes manifest a superstitious dread of making a simple confession
of the truth in this matter, from a fear of furnishing impiety with a handle
for speaking irreverently of the works of God. While I embrace such soberness
with all my heart, I cannot see the least danger in simply holding what
Scripture delivers. when Augustine was not always free from this superstition,
as when he says, that blinding and hardening have respect not to the operation
of God, but to prescience (Lib. de Predestina. et Gratia). But this subtilty
is repudiated by many passages of Scriptures which clearly show that the
divine interference amounts to something more than prescience. And Augustine
himself, in his book against Julian,175 contends at length that
sins are manifestations not merely of divine permission or patience, but
also of divine power, that thus former sins may be punished. In like manner,
what is said of permission is too weak to stand. God is very often said
to blind and harden the reprobate, to turn their hearts, to incline and
impel them, as I have elsewhere fully explained (Book 1 c. 18). The extent
of this agency can never be explained by having recourse to prescience
or permission. We, therefore, hold that there are two methods in which
God may so act. When his light is taken away, nothing remains but blindness
and darkness: when his Spirit is taken away, our hearts become hard as
stones: when his guidance is withdrawn, we immediately turn from the right
path: and hence he is properly said to incline, harden, and blind those
whom he deprives of the faculty of seeing, obeying, and rightly executing.
The second method, which comes much nearer to the exact meaning of the
words, is when executing his judgments by Satan as the minister of his
anger, God both directs men's counsels, and excites their wills, and regulates
their efforts as he pleases. Thus when Moses relates that Simon, king of
the Amorites, did not give the Israelites a passage, because the Lord "had
hardened his spirit, and made his heart obstinate," he immediately adds
the purpose which God had in view--viz. that he might deliver him into
their hand (Deut. 2:30). As God had resolved to destroy him, the hardening
of his heart was the divine preparation for his ruin.
4. In accordance
with the former methods it seems to be said,176 "The law shall
perish from the priests and counsel from the ancients." "He poureth contempt
upon princes, and causeth them to wander in the wilderness, where there
is no way." Again "O Lord, why hast thou made us to err from thy ways,
and hardened our heart from thy fear?" These passages rather indicate what
men become when God deserts them, than what the nature of his agency is
when he works in them. But there are other passages which go farther, such
as those concerning the hardening of Pharaoh: "I will harden his heart,
that he shall not let the people go." The same thing is afterwards repeated
in stronger terms. Did he harden his heart by not softening it? This is,
indeed, true; but he did something more: he gave it in charge to Satan
to confirm him in his obstinacy. Hence he had previously said, "I am sure
he will not let you go." The people come out of Egypt, and the inhabitants
of a hostile region come forth against them. How were they instigated?
Moses certainly declares of Sihon, that it was the Lord who "had hardened
his spirit, and made his heart obstinate," (Deut. 2:30). The Psalmists
relating the same history says, "He turned their hearts to hate his people,"
(Psalm 105:25). You cannot now say that they stumbled merely because they
were deprived of divine counsel. For if they are hardened and turned,
they are purposely bent to the very end in view. Moreover, whenever God
saw it meet to punish the people for their transgression, in what way did
he accomplish his purpose by the reprobate? In such a way as shows that
the efficacy of the action was in him, and that they were only ministers.
At one time he declares, "that he will lift an ensign to the nations from
far, and will hiss unto them from the end of the earth;" at another, that
he will take a net to ensnare them; and at another, that he will be like
a hammer to strike them. But he specially declared that he was not inactive
among theme when he called Sennacherib an axe, which was formed and destined
to be wielded by his own hand.177 Augustine is not far from
the mark when he states the matter thus, That men sin, is attributable
to themselves: that in sinning they produce this or that result, is owing
to the mighty power of God, who divides the darkness as he pleases (August.
de Prædest. Sanct).
5. Moreover,
that the ministry of Satan is employed to instigate the reprobate, whenever
the Lord, in the course of his providence, has any purpose to accomplish
in them, will sufficiently appear from a single passage. It is repeatedly
said in the First Book of Samuel, that an evil spirit from the Lord came
upon Saul, and troubled him (1 Sam. 16:14; 18:10; 19:9). It were impious
to apply this to the Holy Spirit. An impure spirit must therefore be called
a spirit from the Lord, because completely subservient to his purpose,
being more an instrument in acting than a proper agent. We should also
add what Paul says, "God shall send them strong delusion, that they should
believe a lie: that they all might be damned who believed not the truth,"
(2 Thess. 2:11, 12). But in the same transaction there is always a wide
difference between what the Lord does, and what Satan and the ungodly design
to do. The wicked instruments which he has under his hand and can turn
as he pleases, he makes subservient to his own justice. They, as they are
wicked, give effect to the iniquity conceived in their wicked minds. Every
thing necessary to vindicate the majesty of God from calumny, and cut off
any subterfuge on the part of the ungodly, has already been expounded in
the Chapters on Providence (Book 1 Chapter 16-18). Here I only meant to
show, in a few words, how Satan reigns in the reprobate, and how God works
in both.
6. In those actions,
which in themselves are neither good nor bad, and concern the corporeal
rather than the spiritual life, the liberty which man possesses, although
we have above touched upon it (supra, Chap. 2 sect. 13-17), has
not yet been explained. Some have conceded a free choice to man in such
actions; more, I suppose, because they were unwilling to debate a matter
of no great moment, than because they wished positively to assert what
they were prepared to concede. While I admit that those who hold that man
has no ability in himself to do righteousness, hold what is most necessary
to be known for salvation, I think it ought not to be overlooked that we
owe it to the special grace of God, whenever, on the one hand, we choose
what is for our advantage, and whenever our will inclines in that direction;
and on the other, whenever with heart and soul we shun what would otherwise
do us harm. And the interference of Divine Providence goes to the extent
not only of making events turn out as was foreseen to be expedient, but
of giving the wills of men the same direction. If we look at the administration
of human affairs with the eye of sense, we will have no doubt that, so
far, they are placed at man's disposal; but if we lend an ear to the many
passages of Scripture which proclaim that even in these matters the minds
of men are ruled by God, they will compel us to place human choice in subordination
to his special influence. Who gave the Israelites such favour in the eyes
of the Egyptians, that they lent them all their most valuable commodities?
(Exod. 11:3). They never would have been so inclined of their own accord.
Their inclinations, therefore, were more overruled by God than regulated
by themselves. And surely, had not Jacob been persuaded that God inspires
men with divers affections as seemeth to him good, he would not have said
of his son Joseph (whom he thought to be some heathen Egyptian), "God Almighty
give you mercy before the man," (Gen. 43:14). In like manner, the whole
Church confesses that when the Lord was pleased to pity his people, he
made them also to be pitied of all them that carried them captives (Ps.
106:46). In like manner, when his anger was kindled against Saul, so that
he prepared himself for battle, the cause is stated to have been, that
a spirit from God fell upon him (1 Sam. 11:6). who dissuaded Absalom from
adopting the counsel of Ahithophel, which was wont to be regarded as an
oracle? (2 Sam. 17:14). Who disposed Rehoboam to adopt the counsel of the
young men? (1 Kings 12:10). Who caused the approach of the Israelites to
strike terror into nations formerly distinguished for valour? Even the
harlot Rahab recognised the hand of the Lord. Who, on the other hand, filled
the hearts of the Israelites with fear and dread (Lev. 26:36), but He who
threatened in the Law that he would give them a nn "trembling heart"? (Deut.
28:65).
7. It may be
objected, that these are special examples which cannot be regarded as a
general rule. They are sufficient, at all events, to prove the point for
which I contend--viz. that whenever God is pleased to make way for his
providence, he even in external matters so turns and bends the wills of
men, that whatever the freedom of their choice may be, it is still subject
to the disposal of God. That your mind depends more on the agency of God
than the freedom of your own choice, daily experience teaches. Your judgment
often fails, and in matters of no great difficulty, your courage flags;
at other times, in matters of the greatest obscurity, the mode of explicating
them at once suggests itself, while in matters of moment and danger, your
mind rises superior to every difficulty.178 In this way, I interpret
the words of Solomon, "The hearing ear, and the seeing eye, the Lord hath
made even both of them," (Prov. 20:12). For they seem to me to refer not
to their creation, but to peculiar grace in the use of them, when he says,
"The king's heart is in the hand of the Lord as the rivers of water; he
turneth it whithersoever he will," (Prov. 21:1), he comprehends the whole
race under one particular class. If any will is free from subjection, it
must be that of one possessed of regal power, and in a manner exercising
dominion over other wills. But if it is under the hand of God, ours surely
cannot be exempt from it. On this subject there is an admirable sentiment
of Augustine, "Scripture, if it be carefully examined, will show not only
that the good wills of men are made good by God out of evil, and when so
made, are directed to good acts, even to eternal life, but those which
retain the elements of the world are in the power of God, to turn them
whither he pleases, and when he pleases, either to perform acts of kindness,
or by a hidden, indeed, but, at the same time, most just judgment to inflict
punishment," (August. De Gratia et Lib. Arb. ad Valent. cap. 20).
8. Let the reader
here remember, that the power of the human will is not to be estimated
by the event, as some unskilful persons are absurdly wont to do. They think
it an elegant and ingenious proof of the bondage of the human will, that
even the greatest monarchs are sometimes thwarted in their wishes. But
the ability of which we speak must be considered as within the man, not
measured by outward success. In discussing the subject of free will, the
question is not, whether external obstacles will permit a man to execute
what he has internally resolved, but whether, in any matter whatever, he
has a free power of judging and of willing. If men possess both of these,
Attilius Regulus, shut up in a barrel studded with sharp nails, will have
a will no less free than Augustus Caesar ruling with imperial sway over
a large portion of the globe.179
CHAPTER 5.
THE ARGUMENTS USUALLY ALLEGED IN SUPPORT
OF FREE WILL REFUTED.
Objections reduced to
three principal heads:--I. Four absurdities advanced by the opponents of
the orthodox doctrine concerning the slavery of the will, stated and refuted,
sec. 1-5. II. The passages of Scripture which they pervert in favour of
their error, reduced to five heads, and explained, sec. 6-15. III. Five
other passages quoted in defence of free will expounded, sec. 16-19.
Sections.
1. Absurd fictions of opponents first
refuted, and then certain passages of Scripture explained. Answer by a
negative. Confirmation of the answer.
2. Another absurdity of Aristotle
and Pelagius. Answer by a distinction. Answer fortified by passages from
Augustine, and supported by the authority of an Apostle.
3. Third absurdity borrowed from
the words of Chrysostom. Answer by a negative.
4. Fourth absurdity urged of old
by the Pelagians. Answer from the works of Augustine. Illustrated by the
testimony of our Saviour. Another answer, which explains the use of exhortations.
5. A third answer, which contains
a fuller explanation of the second. Objection to the previous answers.
Objection refuted. Summary of the previous answers.
6. First class of arguments which
the Neo-Pelagians draw from Scripture in defence of free will. 1. The Law
demands perfect obedience and therefore God either mocks us, or requires
things which are not in our power. Answer by distinguishing precepts into
three sorts. The first of these considered in this and the following section.
7. This general argument from the
Law of no avail to the patrons of free will. Promises conjoined with precepts,
prove that our sal vation is to be found in the grace of God. Objection,
that the Law was given to the persons living at the time. Answer, confirmed
by passages from Augustine.
8. A special consideration of the
three classes of precepts of no avail to the defenders of free will. 1.
Precepts enjoining us to turn to God. 2. Precepts which simply speak of
the observance of the Law. 3. Precepts which enjoin us to persevere in
the grace of God.
9. Objection. Answer. Confirmation
of the answer from Jeremiah. Another objection refuted.
10. A second class of arguments in
defence of free will drawn from the promises of God--viz. that the promises
which God makes to those who seek him are vain if it is not in our power
to do, or not do, the thing required. Answer, which explains the use of
promises, and removes the supposed inconsistency.
11. Third class of arguments drawn
from the divine upbraidings,--that it is in vain to upbraid us for evils
which it is not in our power to avoid. Answer. Sinners are condemned by
their own consciences, and, therefore, the divine upbraidings are just.
Moreover, there is a twofold use in these upbraidings. Various passages
of Scripture explained by means of the foregoing answers.
12. Objection founded on the words
of Moses. Refutation by the words of an Apostle. Confirmation by argument.
13. Fourth class of arguments by
the defenders of free will. God waits to see whether or not sinners will
repent; therefore they can repent. Answer by a dilemma. Passage in Hosea
explained.
14. Fifth class of arguments in defence
of free will. God and bad works described as our own, and therefore we
are capable of both. Answer by an exposition, which shows that this argument
is unavailing. Objection drawn from analogy. Answer. The nature and mode
of divine agency in the elect.
15. Conclusion of the answer to the
last class of arguments.
16. Third and last division of the
chapter discussing certain passages of Scripture. 1. A passage from Genesis.
Its true meaning explained.
17. 2. Passage from the Epistle to
the Romans. Explanation. Refutation of an objection. Another refutation.
A third refutation from Augustine. 3. A passage from First Corinthians.
Answer to it.
18. 4. A passage from Ecclesiastes.
Explanation. Another explanation.
19. 5. A passage from Luke. Explanation.
Allegorical arguments weak. Another explanation. A third explanation. A
fourth from Augustine. Conclusion and summary of the whole discussion concerning
free will.
1. ENOUGH would seem to have been
said on the subject of man's will, were there not some who endeavour to
urge him to his ruin by a false opinion of liberty, and at the same time,
in order to support their own opinion, assail ours. First, they gather
together some absurd inferences, by which they endeavour to bring odium
upon our doctrine, as if it were abhorrent to common sense, and then they
oppose it with certain passages of Scripture (infra, sec. 6). Both
devices we shall dispose of in their order. If sin, say they, is necessary,
it ceases to be sin; if it is voluntary, it may be avoided. Such, too,
were the weapons with which Pelagius assailed Augustine. But we are unwilling
to crush them by the weight of his name, until we have satisfactorily disposed
of the objections themselves. I deny, therefore, that sin ought to be the
less imputed because it is necessary; and, on the other hand, I deny the
inference, that sin may be avoided because it is voluntary. If any one
will dispute with God, and endeavour to evade his judgment, by pretending
that he could not have done otherwise, the answer already given is sufficient,
that it is owing not to creation, but the corruption of nature, that man
has become the slave of sin, and can will nothing but evil. For whence
that impotence of which the wicked so readily avail themselves as an excuse,
but just because Adam voluntarily subjected himself to the tyranny of the
devil? Hence the corruption by which we are held bound as with chains,
originated in the first man's revolt from his Maker. If all men are justly
held guilty of this revolt, let them not think themselves excused by a
necessity in which they see the clearest cause of their condemnation. But
this I have fully explained above; and in the case of the devil himself,
have given an example of one who sins not less voluntarily that he sins
necessarily. I have also shown, in the case of the elect angels, that though
their will cannot decline from good, it does not therefore cease to be
will. This Bernard shrewdly explains when he says (Serm. 81, in Cantica),
that we are the more miserable in this, that the necessity is voluntary;
and yet this necessity so binds us who are subject to it, that we are the
slaves of sin, as we have already observed. The second step in the reasoning
is vicious, because it leaps from voluntary to free; whereas
we have proved above, that a thing may be done voluntarily, though not
subject to free choice.
2. They add,
that unless virtue and vice proceed from free choice, it is absurd either
to punish man or reward him. Although this argument is taken from Aristotle,
I admit that it is also used by Chrysostom and Jerome. Jerome, however,
does not disguise that it was familiar to the Pelagians. He even quotes
their words, "If grace acts in us, grace, and not we who do the work, will
be crowned," (Hieron. in Ep. ad Ctesiphont. et Dialog. 1) With regard
to punishment, I answer, that it is properly inflicted on those by whom
the guilt is contracted. What matters it whether you sin with a free or
an enslaved judgment, so long as you sin voluntarily, especially when man
is proved to be a sinner because he is under the bondage of sin? In regard
to the rewards of righteousness, is there any great absurdity in acknowledging
that they depend on the kindness of God rather than our own merits? How
often do we meet in Augustine with this expression,--"God crowns not our
merits but his own gifts; and the name of reward is given not to what is
due to our merits, but to the recompense of grace previously bestowed?"
Some seem to think there is acuteness in the remark, that there is no place
at all for the mind, if good works do not spring from free will as their
proper source; but in thinking this so very unreasonable they are widely
mistaken. Augustine does not hesitate uniformly to describe as necessary
the very thing which they count it impious to acknowledge. Thus he asks,
"What is human merit? He who came to bestow not due recompense but free
grace, though himself free from sin, and the giver of freedom, found all
men sinners," (Augustin. in Psal. 31). Again, "If you are to receive your
due, you must be punished. What then is done? God has not rendered you
due punishment, but bestows upon you unmerited grace. If you wish to be
an alien from grace, boast your merits," (in Psal. 70). Again, "You are
nothing in yourself, sin is yours, merit God's. Punishment is your due;
and when the reward shall come, God shall crown his own gifts, not your
merits," (Ep. 52). To the same effect he elsewhere says (De Verb. Apostol.
Serm. 15), that grace is not of merit, but merit of grace. And shortly
after he concludes, that God by his gifts anticipates all our merit, that
he may thereby manifest his own merit, and give what is absolutely free,
because he sees nothing in us that can be a ground of salvation. But why
extend the list of quotations, when similar sentiments are ever and anon
recurring in his works? The abettors of this error would see a still better
refutation of it, if they would attend to the source from which the apostle
derives the glory of the saints,--"Moreover, whom he did predestinate,
them he also called; and whom he called, them he also justified; and whom
he justified, them he also glorified," (Rom. 8:30). On what ground, then,
the apostle being judge (2 Tim. 4:8), are believers crowned? Because by
the mercy of God, not their own exertions, they are predestinated, called,
and justified. Away, then, with the vain fear, that unless free will stand,
there will no longer be any merit! It is most foolish to take alarm, and
recoil from that which Scripture inculcates. "If thou didst receive it,
why dost thou glory as if thou hadst not received it?" (1 Cor. 4:7). You
see how every thing is denied to free will, for the very purpose of leaving
no room for merit. And yet, as the beneficence and liberality of God are
manifold and inexhaustible, the grace which he bestows upon us, inasmuch
as he makes it our own, he recompenses as if the virtuous acts were our
own.
3. But it is
added, in terms which seem to be borrowed from Chrysostom (Homil. 22, in
Genes.), that if our will possesses not the power of choosing good or evil,
all who are partakers of the same nature must be alike good or alike bad.
A sentiment akin to this occurs in the work De Vocatione Gentium (lib.
4 c. 4), usually attributed to Ambrose, in which it is argued, that no
one would ever decline from faith, did not the grace of God leave us in
a mutable state. It is strange that such men should have so blundered.
How did it fail to occur to Chrysostom, that it is divine election which
distinguishes among men? We have not the least hesitation to admit what
Paul strenuously maintains, that all, without exception, are depraved and
given over to wickedness; but at the same time we add, that through the
mercy of God all do not continue in wickedness. Therefore, while we all
labour naturally under the same disease, those only recover health to whom
the Lord is pleased to put forth his healing hand. The others whom, in
just judgment, he passes over, pine and rot away till they are consumed.
And this is the only reason why some persevere to the end, and others,
after beginning their course, fall away. Perseverance is the gift of God,
which he does not lavish promiscuously on all, but imparts to whom he pleases.
If it is asked how the difference arises--why some steadily persevere,
and others prove deficient in steadfastness, we can give no other reason
than that the Lord, by his mighty power, strengthens and sustains the former,
so that they perish not, while he does not furnish the same assistance
to the latter, but leaves them to be monuments of instability.
4. Still it is
insisted, that exhortations are vain, warnings superfluous, and rebukes
absurd, if the sinner possesses not the power to obey. When similar objections
were urged against Augustine, he was obliged to write his book, De Correptione
et Gratia, where he has fully disposed of them. The substance of his answer
to his opponents is this: "O, man! learn from the precept what you ought
to do; learn from correction, that it is your own fault you have not the
power; and learn in prayer, whence it is that you may receive the power."
Very similar is the argument of his book, De Spiritu et Litera, in which
he shows that God does not measure the precepts of his law by human strength,
but, after ordering what is right, freely bestows on his elect the power
of fulfilling it. The subject, indeed, does not require a long discussion.
For we are not singular in our doctrine, but have Christ and all his apostles
with us. Let our opponents, then, consider how they are to come off victorious
in a contest which they wage with such antagonists. Christ declares, "without
me ye can do nothing," (John 20:5). Does he the less censure and chastise
those who, without him, did wickedly? Does he the less exhort every man
to be intent on good works? How severely does Paul inveigh against the
Corinthians for want of charity (1 Cor. 3:3); and yet at the same time,
he prays that charity may be given them by the Lord. In the Epistle to
the Romans, he declares that "it is not of him that willeth, nor of him
that runneth, but of God that showeth mercy," (Rom. 9:16). Still he ceases
not to warn, exhort, and rebuke them. Why then do they not expostulate
with God for making sport with men, by demanding of them things which he
alone can give, and chastising them for faults committed through want of
his grace? Why do they not admonish Paul to spare those who have it not
in their power to will or to run, unless the mercy of God, which has forsaken
them, precede? As if the doctrine were not founded on the strongest reason--reason
which no serious inquirer can fail to perceive. The extent to which doctrine,
and exhortation, and rebuke, are in themselves able to change the mind,
is indicated by Paul when he says, "Neither is he that planteth any thing,
neither he that watereth; but God that giveth the increase," (1 Cor 3:7)
in like manner, we see that Moses delivers the precepts of the Law under
a heavy sanction, and that the prophets strongly urge and threaten transgressors
though they at the same time confess, that men are wise only when an understanding
heart is given them; that it is the proper work of God to circumcise the
heart, and to change it from stone into flesh; to write his law on their
inward parts; in short, to renew souls so as to give efficacy to doctrine.
5. What purpose,
then, is served by exhortations? It is this: As the wicked, with obstinate
heart, despise them, they will be a testimony against them when they stand
at the judgment-seat of God; nay, they even now strike and lash their consciences.
For, however they may petulantly deride, they cannot disapprove them. But
what, you will ask, can a miserable mortal do, when softness of heart,
which is necessary to obedience, is denied him? I ask, in reply, Why have
recourse to evasion, since hardness of heart cannot be imputed to any but
the sinner himself? The ungodly, though they would gladly evade the divine
admonitions, are forced, whether they will or not, to feel their power.
But their chief use is to be seen in the case of believers, in whom the
Lord, while he always acts by his Spirit, also omits not the instrumentality
of his word, but employs it, and not without effect. Let this, then, be
a standing truth, that the whole strength of the godly consists in the
grace of God, according to the words of the prophet, "I will give them
one heart, and I will put a new spirit within you; and I will take the
stony heart out of their flesh, and will give them an heart of flesh, that
they may walk in my statutes," (Ezek. 11:19, 20). But it will be asked,
why are they now admonished of their duty, and not rather left to the guidance
of the Spirit? Why are they urged with exhortations when they cannot hasten
any faster than the Spirit impels them? and why are they chastised, if
at any time they go astray, seeing that this is caused by the necessary
infirmity of the flesh? "O, man! who art thou that replies against God?"
If, in order to prepare us for the grace which enables us to obey exhortation,
God sees meet to employ exhortation, what is there in such an arrangement
for you to carp and scoff at? Had exhortations and reprimands no other
profit with the godly than to convince them of sin, they could not be deemed
altogether useless. Now, when, by the Spirit of God acting within, they
have the effect of inflaming their desire of good, of arousing them from
lethargy, of destroying the pleasure and honeyed sweetness of sin, making
it hateful and loathsome, who will presume to cavil at them as superfluous?
Should any one
wish a clearer reply, let him take the following:--God works in his elect
in two ways: inwardly, by his Spirit; outwardly, by his Word. By his Spirit
illuminating their minds, and training their hearts to the practice of
righteousness, he makes them new creatures, while, by his Word, he stimulates
them to long and seek for this renovation. In both, he exerts the might
of his hand in proportion to the measure in which he dispenses them. The
Word, when addressed to the reprobate, though not effectual for their amendment,
has another use. It urges their consciences now, and will render them more
inexcusable on the day of judgment. Thus, our Saviour, while declaring
that none can come to him but those whom the Father draws, and that the
elect come after they have heard and learned of the Father (John 6:44,
45), does not lay aside the office of teacher, but carefully invites those
who must be taught inwardly by the Spirit before they can make any profit.
The reprobate, again, are admonished by Paul, that the doctrine is not
in vain; because, while it is in them a savour of death unto death, it
is still a sweet savour unto God (2 Cor. 2:16).
6. The enemies
of this doctrine are at great pains in collecting passages of Scripture,
as if, unable to accomplish any thing by their weight, they were to overwhelm
us by their number. But as in battle, when it is come to close quarters,
an unwarlike multitude, how great soever the pomp and show they make, give
way after a few blows, and take to flight,180 so we shall have
little difficulty here in disposing of our opponents and their host. All
the passages which they pervert in opposing us are very similar in their
import; and hence, when
they are arranged under their proper heads, one
answer will suffice for several; it is not necessary to give a separate
consideration to each. Precepts seem to be regarded as their stronghold.
These they think so accommodated to our abilities, as to make it follow
as a matter of course, that whatever they enjoin we are able to perform.
Accordingly, they run over all the precepts, and by them fix the measure
of our power. For, say they, when God enjoins meekness, submission, love,
chastity, piety, and holiness, and when he forbids anger, pride, theft,
uncleanness, idolatry, and the like, he either mocks us, or only requires
things which are in our power.
All the precepts
which they thus heap together may be divided into three classes. Some enjoin
a first conversion unto God, others speak simply of the observance of the
law, and others inculcate perseverance in the grace which has been received.
We shall first treat of precepts in general, and then proceed to consider
each separate class. That the abilities of man are equal to the precepts
of the divine law, has long been a common idea, and has some show of plausibility.
It is founded, however, on the grossest ignorance of the law. Those who
deem it a kind of sacrilege to say, that the observance of the law is impossible,
insist, as their strongest argument, that, if it is so, the Law has been
given in vain (infra, Chap. 7 sec. 5). For they speak just as if
Paul had never said anything about the Law. But what, pray, is meant by
saying, that the Law "was added because of transgressions;" "by the law
is the knowledge of sin;" "I had not known sin but by the law;" "the law
entered that the offence might abound?" (Gal. 3:19; Rom. 3:20; 7:7; 5:20).
Is it meant that the Law was to be limited to our strength, lest it should
be given in vain? Is it not rather meant that it was placed far above us,
in order to convince us of our utter feebleness? Paul indeed declares,
that charity is the end and fulfilling of the Law (1 Tim. 1:5). But when
he prays that the minds of the Thessalonians may be filled with it, he
clearly enough acknowledges that the Law sounds in our ears without profit,
if God do not implant it thoroughly in our hearts (1 Thess. 3:12).
7. I admit, indeed,
that if the Scripture taught nothing else on the subject than that the
Law is a rule of life by which we ought to regulate our pursuits, I should
at once assent to their opinion; but since it carefully and clearly explains
that the use of the Law is manifold, the proper course is to learn from
that explanation what the power of the Law is in man. In regard to the
present question, while it explains what our duty is it teaches that the
power of obeying it is derived from the goodness of God, and it accordingly
urges us to pray that this power may be given us. If there were merely
a command and no promise, it would be necessary to try whether our strength
were sufficient to fulfil the command; but since promises are annexed,
which proclaim not only that aid, but that our whole power is derived from
divine grace, they at the same time abundantly testify that we are not
only unequal to the observance of the Law, but mere fools in regard to
it. Therefore, let us hear no more of a proportion between our ability
and the divine precepts, as if the Lord had accommodated the standard of
justice which he was to give in the Law to our feeble capacities. We should
rather gather from the promises hove ill provided we are, having in everything
so much need of grace. But say they, Who will believe that the Lord designed
his Law for blocks and stones? There is no wish to make any one believe
this. The ungodly are neither blocks nor stones, when, taught by the Law
that their lusts are offensive to God, they are proved guilty by their
own confession; nor are the godly blocks or stones, when admonished of
their powerlessness, they take refuge in grace. To this effect are the
pithy sayings of Augustine, "God orders what we cannot do, that we may
know what we ought to ask of him. There is a great utility in precepts,
if all that is given to free will is to do greater honour to divine grace.
Faith acquires what the Law requires; nay, the Law requires, in order that
faith may acquire what is thus required; nay, more, God demands of us faith
itself, and finds not what he thus demands, until by giving he makes it
possible to find it." Again, he says, "Let God give what he orders, and
order what he wills."181
8. This will
be more clearly seen by again attending to the three classes of precepts
to which we above referred. Both in the Law and in the Prophets, God repeatedly
calls upon us to turn to him.182 But, on the other hand, a prophet
exclaims, "Turn thou me, and I shall be turned; for thou art the Lord my
God. Surely after that I was turned, I repented." He orders us to circumcise
the foreskins of our hearts; but Moses declares, that that circumcision
is made by his own hand. In many passages he demands a new heart, but in
others he declares that he gives it. As Augustine says, "What God promises,
we ourselves do not through choice or nature, but he himself does by grace."
The same observation is made, when, in enumerating the rules of Tichonius,
he states the third in effect to be--that we distinguish carefully between
the Law and the promises, or between the commands and grace (Augustin.
de Doctrine Christiana, lib. 3). Let them now go and gather from precepts
what man's power of obedience is, when they would destroy the divine grace
by which the precepts themselves are accomplished. The precepts of the
second class are simply those which enjoin us to worship God, to obey and
adhere to his will, to do his pleasure, and follow his teaching. But innumerable
passages testify that every degree of purity, piety, holiness, and justices
which we possess, is his gift. Of the third class of precepts is the exhortation
of Paul and Barnabas to the proselytes, as recorded by Luke; they "persuaded
them to continue in the grace of God," (Acts 13:43). But the source from
which this power of continuance must be sought is elsewhere explained by
Paul, when he says, "Finally, my brethren, be strong in the Lord," (Eph.
6:10). In another passage he says, "Grieve not the Holy Spirit of God,
whereby ye are sealed unto the day of redemption," (Eph. 4:30). But as
the thing here enjoined could not be performed by man, he prays in behalf
of the Thessalonians, that God would count them "worthy of this calling,
and fulfil all the good pleasure of his goodness, and the work of faith
with power," (2 Thess. 1:11). In the same way, in the Second Epistle to
the Corinthians, when treating of alms, he repeatedly commends their good
and pious inclination. A little farther on, however, he exclaims, "Thanks
be to God, which put the same earnest care into the heart of Titus for
you. For indeed he accepted the exhortation," (2 Cor. 8:16, 17). If Titus
could not even perform the office of being a mouth to exhort others, except
in so far as God suggested, how could the others have been voluntary agents
in acting, if the Lord Jesus had not directed their hearts?
9. Some, who
would be thought more acute, endeavour to evade all these passages, by
the quibble, that there is nothing to hinder us from contributing our part,
while God, at the same time, supplies our deficiencies. They, moreover,
adduce passages from the Prophets, in which the work of our conversion
seems to be shared between God and ourselves; "Turn ye unto me, saith the
Lord of hosts, and I will turn unto you, saith the Lord of hosts," (Zech.
1:3). The kind of assistance which God gives us has been shown above (sect.
7, 8), and need not now be repeated. One thing only I ask to be conceded
to me, that it is vain to think we have a power of fulfilling the Law,
merely because we are enjoined to obey it. Since, in order to our fulfilling
the divine precepts, the grace of the Lawgiver is both necessary, and has
been promised to us, this much at least is clear, that more is demanded
of us than we are able to pay. Nor can any cavil evade the declaration
in Jeremiah, that the covenant which God made with his ancient people was
broken, because it was only of the letter--that to make it effectual, it
was necessary for the Spirit to interpose and train the heart to obedience
(Jer. 31:32). The opinion we now combat is not aided by the words, "Turn
unto me, and I will turn unto you." The turning there spoken of is not
that by which God renews the heart unto repentance; but that in which,
by bestowing prosperity, he manifests his kindness and favour, just in
the same way as he sometimes expresses his displeasure by sending adversity.
The people complaining under the many calamities which befell them, that
they were forsaken by God, he answers, that his kindness would not fail
them, if they would return to a right course, and to himself, the standard
of righteousness. The passage, therefore, is wrested from its proper meaning
when it is made to countenance the idea that the work of conversion is
divided between God and man (supra, Chap. 2 sec. 27). We have only
glanced briefly at this subject, as the proper place for it will occur
when we come to treat of the Law (Chap. 7 sec. 2 and 3).
10. The second
class of objections is akin to the former. They allege the promises in
which the Lord makes a paction with our will. Such are the following: "Seek
good, and not evil, that ye may live," (Amos 5:14). "If ye be willing and
obedient, ye shall eat the good of the land: but if ye refuse and rebel,
ye shall be devoured with the sword; for the mouth of the Lord has spoken
it," (Isaiah 1:19, 20). "If thou wilt put away thine abominations out of
my sight, then thou shalt not remove," (Jer. 4:1). "It shall come to pass,
if thou shalt hearken diligently unto the voice of the Lord thy God, to
observe and do all the commandments which I command thee this days that
the Lord thy God will set thee on high above all nations of the earth,"
(Deut. 28:1). There are other similar passages (Lev. 26:3, &c). They
think that the blessings contained in these promises are offered to our
will absurdly and in mockery, if it is not in our power to secure or reject
them. It is, indeed, an easy matter to indulge in declamatory complaint
on this subject, to say that we are cruelly mocked183 by the
Lord, when he declares that his kindness depends on our wills if we are
not masters of our wills--that it would be a strange liberality on the
part of God to set his blessings before us, while we have no power of enjoying
them,--a strange certainty of promises, which, to prevent their ever being
fulfilled, are made to depend on an impossibility. Of promises of this
description, which have a condition annexed to them, we shall elsewhere
speak, and make it plain that there is nothing absurd in the impossible
fulfilment of them. In regard to the matter in hand, I deny that God cruelly
mocks us when he invites us to merit blessings which he knows we are altogether
unable to merit. The promises being offered alike to believers and to the
ungodly, have their use in regard to both. As God by his precepts stings
the consciences of the ungodly, so as to prevent them from enjoying their
sins while they have no remembrance of his judgments, so, in his promises,
he in a manner takes them to witness how unworthy they are of his kindness.
Who can deny that it is most just and most becoming in God to do good to
those who worship him, and to punish with due severity those who despise
his majesty? God, therefore, proceeds in due order, when, though the wicked
are bound by the fetters of sin, he lays down the law in his promises,
that he will do them good only if they depart from their wickedness. This
would be right, though His only object were to let them understand that
they are deservedly excluded from the favour due to his true worshipers.
On the other hand, as he desires by all means to stir up believers to supplicate
his grace, it surely should not seem strange that he attempts to accomplish
by promises the same thing which, as we have shown, he to their great benefit
accomplishes by means of precepts. Being taught by precepts what the will
of God is, we are reminded of our wretchedness in being so completely at
variance with that will, and, at the same time, are stimulated to invoke
the aid of the Spirit to guide us into the right path. But as our indolence
is not sufficiently aroused by precepts, promises are added, that they
may attract us by their sweetness, and produce a feeling of love for the
precept. The greater our desire of righteousness, the greater will be our
earnestness to obtain the grace of God. And thus it is, that in the protestations,
if
we be willing, if thou shalt hearken, the Lord neither attributes
to us a full power of willing and hearkening, nor yet mocks us for our
impotence.184
11. The third
class of objections is not unlike the other two. For they produce passages
in which God upbraids his people for their ingratitude, intimating that
it was not his fault that they did not obtain all kinds of favour from
his indulgence. Of such passages, the following are examples: "The Amalekites
and the Canaanites are before you, and ye shall fall by the sword: because
ye are turned away from the Lord, therefore the Lord will not be with you,"
(Num. 14:43). "Because ye have done all these works, saith the Lord, and
I spake unto you, rising up early and speaking, but ye heard not; and I
called you, but ye answered not; therefore will I do unto this house, which
is called by my name, wherein ye trust, and unto the place which I gave
to you and to your fathers, as I have done to Shiloh," (Jer. 7:13, 14).
"They obeyed not thy voice, neither walked in thy law; they have done nothing
of all that thou commandedst them to do: therefore thou hast caused all
this evil to come upon them," (Jer. 32:23). How, they ask, can such upbraiding
be directed against those who have it in their power immediately to reply,--Prosperity
was dear to us: we feared adversity; that we did not, in order to obtain
the one and avoid the other, obey the Lord, and listen to his voice, is
owing to its not being free for us to do so in consequence of our subjection
to the dominion of sin; in vain, therefore, are we upbraided with evils
which it was not in our power to escape. But to say nothing of the pretext
of necessity, which is but a feeble and flimsy defence of their conduct,
can they, I ask, deny their guilt? If they are held convicted of any fault,
the Lord is not unjust in upbraiding them for having, by their own perverseness,
deprived themselves of the advantages of his kindness. Let them say, then,
whether they can deny that their own will is the depraved cause of their
rebellion. If they find within themselves a fountain of wickedness, why
do they stand declaiming about extraneous causes, with the view of making
it appear that they are not the authors of their own destruction? If it
be true that it is not for another's faults that sinners are both deprived
of the divine favour, and visited with punishment, there is good reason
why they should hear these rebukes from the mouth of God. If they obstinately
persist in their vices, let them learn in their calamities to accuse and
detest their own wickedness, instead of charging God with cruelty and injustice.
If they have not manifested docility, let them, under a feeling of disgust
at the sins which they see to be the cause of their misery and ruin, return
to the right path, and, with serious contrition, confess the very thing
of which the Lord by his rebuke reminds them. Of what use those upbraidings
of the prophets above quoted are to believers, appears from the solemn
prayer of Daniel, as given in his ninth chapter. Of their use in regard
to the ungodly, we see an example in the Jews, to whom Jeremiah was ordered
to explain the cause of their miseries, though the event could not be otherwise
than the Lord had foretold. "Therefore thou shalt speak these words unto
them; but they will not hearken unto thee: thou shalt also call unto them;
but they will not answer thee," (Jer. 7:27). Of what use, then, was it
to talk to the deaf? It was, that even against their will they might understand
that what they heard was true, and that it was impious blasphemy to transfer
the blame of their wickedness to God, when it resided in themselves.
These few explanations
will make it very easy for the reader to disentangle himself from the immense
heap of passages (containing both precepts and reprimands) which the enemies
of divine grace are in the habit of piling up, that they may thereon erect
their statue of free will. The Psalmist upbraids the Jews as "a stubborn
and rebellious generation; a generation that set not their heart aright,"
(Psalm 78:8); and in another passage, he exhorts the men of his time, "Harden
not your heart," (Psalm 95:8). This implies that the whole blame of the
rebellion lies in human depravity. But it is foolish thence to infer, that
the heart, the preparation of which is from the Lord, may be equally bent
in either direction. The Psalmist says, "I have inclined my heart to perform
thy statutes alway," (Psalm 119:112); meaning, that with willing and cheerful
readiness of mind he had devoted himself to God. He does not boast, however,
that he was the author of that disposition, for in the same psalm he acknowledges
it to be the gift of God. We must, therefore, attend to the admonition
of Paul, when he thus addresses believers, "Work out your own salvation
with fear and trembling. For it is God which worketh in you both to will
and to do of his good pleasure," (Phil. 2:12, 13). He ascribes to them
a part in acting that they may not indulge in carnal sloth, but by enjoining
fear and trembling, he humbles them so as to keep them in remembrance,
that the very thing which they are ordered to do is the proper work of
God--distinctly intimating, that believers act (if I may so speak)
passively
in as much as the power is given them from heaven, and cannot in any way
be arrogated to themselves. Accordingly, when Peter exhorts us to "add
to faith virtue," (2 Pet. 1:5), he does not concede to us the possession
of a second place, as if we could do anything separately. He only arouses
the sluggishness of our flesh, by which faith itself is frequently stifled.
To the same effect are the words of Paul. He says, "Quench not the Spirit,"
(1 Thess. 5:19); because a spirit of sloth, if not guarded against, is
ever and anon creeping in upon believers. But should any thence infer that
it is entirely in their own power to foster the offered light, his ignorance
will easily be refuted by the fact, that the very diligence which Paul
enjoins is derived only from God (2 Cor. 7:1). We are often commanded to
purge ourselves of all impurity, though the Spirit claims this as his peculiar
office. In fine, that what properly belongs to God is transferred to us
only by way of concession, is plain from the words of John, "He that is
begotten of God keepeth himself," (1 John 5:18). The advocates of free
will fasten upon the expression as if it implied, that we are kept partly
by the power of God, partly by our own, whereas the very keeping of which
the Apostle speaks is itself from heaven. Hence, Christ prays his Father
to keep us from evil (John 17:15), and we know that believers, in their
warfare against Satan, owe their victory to the armour of God. Accordingly,
Peter, after saying, "Ye have purified your souls in obeying the truth,"
immediately adds by way of correction, "through the Spirit," (1 Pet. 1:22).
In fine, the nothingness of human strength in the spiritual contest is
briefly shown by John, when he says, that "Whosoever is born of God does
not commit sin; for his seed remaineth in him" (1 John 3:9). He elsewhere
gives the reasons "This is the victory that overcometh the world, even
our faith," (1 John 5:4).
12. But a passage
is produced from the Law of Moses, which seems very adverse to the view
now given. After promulgating the Law, he takes the people to witness in
these terms: "This commandment which I command thee this day, it is not
hidden from thee, neither is it far off. It is not in heaven, that thou
shouldest say, Who shall go up for us to heaven, and bring it unto us,
that we may hear it, and do it? But the word is very nigh unto thee, in
thy mouth, and in thy heart, that thou mayest do it," (Deut. 30:11, 12,
14). Certainly, if this is to be understood of mere precepts, I admit that
it is of no little importance to the matter in hand. For, though it were
easy to evade the difficulty by saying, that the thing here treated of
is not the observance of the law, but the facility and readiness of becoming
acquainted with it, some scruple, perhaps, would still remain. The Apostle
Paul, however, no mean interpreter, removes all doubt when he affirms,
that Moses here spoke of the doctrine of the Gospel (Rom. 10:8). If any
one is so refractory as to contend that Paul violently wrested the words
in applying them to the Gospel, though his hardihood is chargeable with
impiety, we are still able, independently of the authority of the Apostle,
to repel the objection. For, if Moses spoke of precepts merely, he was
only inflating the people with vain confidence. Had they attempted the
observance of the law in their own strength, as a matter in which they
should find no difficulty, what else could have been the result than to
throw them headlong? Where, then, was that easy means of observing the
law, when the only access to it was over a fatal precipice?185
Accordingly, nothing is more certain than that under these words is comprehended
the covenant of mercy, which had been promulgated along with the demands
of the law. A few verses before, he had said, "The Lord thy God will circumcise
thine heart, and the heart of thy seed, to love the Lord thy God with all
thine heart, and with all thy soul, that thou mayest live," (Deut. 30:6).
Therefore, the readiness of which he immediately after speaks was placed
not in the power of man, but in the protection and help of the Holy Spirit,
who mightily performs his own work in our weakness. The passage, however,
is not to be understood of precepts simply, but rather of the Gospel promises,
which, so far from proving any power in us to fulfil righteousness, utterly
disprove it. This is confirmed by the testimony of Paul, when he observes
that the Gospel holds forth salvation to us, not under the harsh arduous,
and impossible terms on which the law treats with us (namely, that those
shall obtain it who fulfil all its demands), but on terms easy, expeditious,
and readily obtained. This passage, therefore, tends in no degree to establish
the freedom of the human will.
13. They are
wont also to adduce certain passages in which God is said occasionally
to try men, by withdrawing the assistance of his grace, and to wait until
they turn to him, as in Hosea, "I will go and return to my place, till
they acknowledge their offence, and seek my face," (Hosea 5:15). It were
absurd (say they), that the Lord should wait till Israel should seek his
face, if their minds were not flexible, so as to turn in either direction
of their own accord. As if anything were more common in the prophetical
writings than for God to put on the semblance of rejecting and casting
off his people until they reform their lives. But what can our opponents
extract from such threats? If they mean to maintain that a people, when
abandoned by God, are able of themselves to think of turning unto him,
they will do it in the very face of Scripture. On the other hand, if they
admit that divine grace is necessary to conversion, why do they dispute
with us? But while they admit that grace is so far necessary, they insist
on reserving some ability for man. How do they prove it? Certainly not
from this nor any similar passage; for it is one thing to withdraw from
man, and look to what he will do when thus abandoned and left to himself,
and another thing to assist his powers (whatever they may be), in proportion
to their weakness. What, then, it will be asked, is meant by such expressions?
I answer, just the same as if God were to say, Since nothing is gained
by admonishing, exhorting, rebuking this stubborn people, I will withdraw
for a little, and silently leave them to be afflicted; I shall see whether,
after long calamity, any remembrance of me will return, and induce them
to seek my face. But by the departure of the Lord to a distance is meant
the withdrawal of prophecy. By his waiting to see what men will do is meant
that he, while silent, and in a manner hiding himself, tries them for a
season with various afflictions. Both he does that he may humble us the
more; for we shall sooner be broken than corrected by the strokes of adversity,
unless his Spirit train us to docility. Moreover, when the Lord, offended
and, as it were, fatigued with our obstinate perverseness, leaves us for
a while (by withdrawing his word, in which he is wont in some degree to
manifest his presence), and makes trial of what we will do in his absence,
from this it is erroneously inferred, that there is some power of free
will, the extent of which is to be considered and tried, whereas the only
end which he has in view is to bring us to an acknowledgment of our utter
nothingness.
14. Another objection
is founded on a mode of speaking which is constantly observed both in Scripture
and in common discourse. God works are said to be ours, and we are said
to do what is holy and acceptable to God, just as we are said to commit
sin. But if sins are justly imputed to us, as proceeding from ourselves,
for the same reason (say they) some share must certainly be attributed
to us in works of righteousness. It could not be accordant with reason
to say, that we do those things which we are incapable of doing of our
own motion, God moving us, as if we were stones. These expressions, therefore,
it is said, indicate that while, in the matter of grace, we give the first
place to God, a secondary place must be assigned to our agency. If the
only thing here insisted on were, that good works are termed
ours,
I, in my turn, would reply, that the bread which we ask God to give us
is also termed ours. What, then, can be inferred from the title
of possession, but simply that, by the kindness and free gift of Gods that
becomes ours which in other respects is by no means due to us? Therefore
let them either ridicule the same absurdity in the Lord's Prayer, or let
them cease to regard it as absurd, that good works should be called ours,
though our only property in them is derived from the liberality of God.
But there is something stronger in the fact, that we are often said in
Scripture to worship God, do justice, obey the law, and follow good works.
These being proper offices of the mind and will, how can they be consistently
referred to the Spirit, and, at the same time, attributed to us, unless
there be some concurrence on our part with the divine agency? This difficulty
will be easily disposed of if we attend to the manner in which the Holy
Spirit acts in the righteous. The similitude with which they invidiously
assail us is foreign to the purpose; for who is so absurd as to imagine
that movement in man differs in nothing from the impulse given to a stone?
Nor can anything of the kind be inferred from our doctrine. To the natural
powers of man we ascribe approving and rejecting, willing and not willing,
striving and resisting--viz. approving vanity, rejecting solid good, willing
evil and not willing good, striving for wickedness and resisting righteousness.
What then does the Lord do? If he sees meet to employ depravity of this
description as an instrument of his anger, he gives it whatever aim and
direction he pleases, that, by a guilty hand, he may accomplish his own
good work. A wicked man thus serving the power of God, while he is bent
only on following his own lust, can we compare to a stone, which, driven
by an external impulse, is borne along without motion, or sense, or will
of its own? We see how wide the difference is. But how stands the case
with the godly, as to whom chiefly the question is raised? When God erects
his kingdom in them, he, by means of his Spirit, curbs their will, that
it may not follow its natural bent, and be carried hither and thither by
vagrant lusts; bends, frames trains, and guides it according to the rule
of his justice, so as to incline it to righteousness and holiness, and
establishes and strengthens it by the energy of his Spirit, that it may
not stumble or fall. For which reason Augustine thus expresses himself
(De Corrept. et Gratia, cap. 2), "It will be said we are therefore acted
upon, and do not act. Nay, you act and are acted upon, and you then act
well when you are acted upon by one that is good. The Spirit of God who
actuates you is your helper in acting, and bears the name of helper, because
you, too, do something." In the former member of this sentence, he reminds
us that the agency of man is not destroyed by the motion of the Holy Spirit,
because nature furnishes the will which is guided so as to aspire to good.
As to the second member of the sentence, in which he says that the very
idea of help implies that we also do something, we must not understand
it as if he were attributing to us some independent power of action; but
not to foster a feeling of sloth, he reconciles the agency of God with
our own agency, by saying, that to wish is from nature, to wish well is
from grace. Accordingly, he had said a little before, "Did not God assist
us, we should not only not be able to conquer, but not able even to fight."
15. Hence it
appears that the grace of God (as this name is used when regeneration is
spoken of) is the rule of the Spirit, in directing and governing the human
will. Govern he cannot, without correcting, reforming, renovating (hence
we say that the beginning of regeneration consists in the abolition of
what is ours); in like manner, he cannot govern without moving, impelling,
urging, and restraining. Accordingly, all the actions which are afterwards
done are truly said to be wholly his. Meanwhile, we deny not the truth
of Augustine's doctrine, that the will is not destroyed, but rather repaired,
by grace--the two things being perfectly consistent--viz. that the human
will may be said to be renewed when its vitiosity and perverseness being
corrected, it is conformed to the true standard of righteousness and that,
at the same time, the will may be said to be made new, being so vitiated
and corrupted that its nature must be entirely changed. There is nothing
then to prevent us from saying, that our will does what the Spirit does
in us, although the will contributes nothing of itself apart from grace.
We must, therefore, remember what we quoted from Augustine, that some men
labour in vain to find in the human will some good quality properly belonging
to it. Any intermixture which men attempt to make by conjoining the effort
of their own will with divine grace is corruption, just as when unwholesome
and muddy water is used to dilute wine. But though every thing good in
the will is entirely derived from the influence of the Spirit, yet, because
we have naturally an innate power of willing, we are not improperly said
to do the things of which God claims for himself all the praise; first,
because every thing which his kindness produces in us is our own (only
we must understand that it is not of ourselves); and, secondly, because
it is our mind, our will, our study which are guided by him to what is
good.
16. The other
passages which they gather together from different quarters will not give
much trouble to any person of tolerable understanding, who pays due attention
to the explanations already given. They adduce the passage of Genesis,
"Unto thee shall be his desire, and thou shalt rule over him," (Gen. 4:7).
This they interpret of sin, as if the Lord were promising Cain that the
dominion of sin should not prevail over his mind, if he would labour in
subduing it. We, however, maintain that it is much more agreeable to the
context to understand the words as referring to Abel, it being there the
purpose of God to point out the injustice of the envy which Cain had conceived
against his brother. And this He does in two ways, by showing, first, that
it was vain to think he could, by means of wickedness, surpass his brother
in the favour of God, by whom nothing is esteemed but righteousness; and,
secondly, how ungrateful he was for the kindness he had already received,
in not being able to bear with a brother who had been subjected to his
authority. But lest it should be thought that we embrace this interpretation
because the other is contrary to our view, let us grant that God does here
speak of sin. If so, his words contain either an order or a promise. If
an order, we have already demonstrated that this is no proof of man's ability;
if a promise, where is the fulfilment of the promise when Cain yielded
to the sin over which he ought to have prevailed? They will allege a tacit
condition in the promise, as if it were said that he would gain the victory
if he contended. This subterfuge is altogether unavailing. For, if the
dominion spoken of refers to sin, no man can have any doubt that the form
of expression is imperative, declaring not what we are able, but what it
is our duty to do, even if beyond our ability. Although both the nature
of the case, and the rule of grammatical construction, require that it
be regarded as a comparison between Cain and Abel, we think the only preference
given to the younger brother was, that the elder made himself inferior
by his own wickedness.
17. They appeal,
moreover, to the testimony of the Apostle Paul, because he says, "It is
not of him that willeth, nor of him that runneth, but of God that showeth
mercy," (Rom. 9:15). From this they infer, that there is something in will
and endeavour, which, though weak in themselves, still, being mercifully
aided by God, are not without some measure of success. But if they would
attend in sober earnest to the subject there handled by Paul, they would
not so rashly pervert his meaning. I am aware they can quote Origin and
Jerome186 in support of this exposition. To these I might, in
my turn, oppose Augustine. But it is of no consequence what they thought,
if it is clear what Paul meant. He teaches that salvation is prepared for
those only on whom the Lord is pleased to bestow his mercy--that ruin and
death await all whom he has not chosen. He had proved the condition of
the reprobate by the example of Pharaoh, and confirmed the certainty of
gratuitous election by the passage in Moses, "I will have mercy on whom
I will have mercy." Thereafter he concludes, that it is not of him that
willeth, nor of him that runneth, but of God that showeth mercy. If these
words are understood to mean that the will or endeavour are not sufficient,
because unequal to such a task, the Apostle has not used them very appropriately.
We must therefore abandon this absurd mode of arguing, "It is not of him
that willeth, nor of him that runneth;" therefore, there is some will,
some running. Paul's meaning is more simple--there is no will nor running
by which we can prepare the way for our salvation--it is wholly of the
divine mercy. He indeed says nothing more than he says to Titus, when he
writes, "After that the kindness and love of God our Saviour toward man
appeared, not by works of righteousness which we have done, but according
to his mercy he saved us," (Titus 3:4, 5). Those who argue that Paul insinuated
there was some will and some running when he said, "It is not of him that
willeth, nor of him that runneth," would not allow me to argue after the
same fashion, that we have done some righteous works, because Paul says
that we have attained the divine favour, "not by works of righteousness
which we have done." But if they see a flaw in this mode of arguing, let
them open their eyes, and they will see that their own mode is not free
from a similar fallacy. The argument which Augustine uses is well founded,
"If it is said, `It is not of him that willeth, nor of him that runneth,'
because neither will nor running are sufficient; it may, on the other hand,
be retorted, it is not `of God that showeth mercy,' because mercy does
not act alone," (August. Ep. 170, ad Vital. See also Enchirid. ad Laurent.
cap. 32). This second proposition being absurd, Augustine justly concludes
the meaning of the words to be, that there is no good will in man until
it is prepared by the Lord; not that we ought not to will and run, but
that both are produced in us by God. Some, with equal unskilfulness, wrest
the saying of Paul, "We are labourers together with God," (1 Cor. 3:9).
There cannot be a doubt that these words apply to ministers only, who are
called "labourers with God," not from bringing any thing of their own,
but because God makes use of their instrumentality after he has rendered
them fit, and provided them with the necessary endowments.
18. They appeal
also to Ecclesiasticus, who is well known to be a writer of doubtful authority.
But, though we might justly decline his testimony, let us see what he says
in support of free will. His words are, "He himself made man from the beginning,
and left him in the hand of his counsel; If thou wilt, to keep the commandments,
and perform acceptable faithfulness. He has set fire and water before thee:
stretch forth thy hand unto whether thou wilt. Before man is life and death;
and whether him liketh shall be given him," (Ecclesiasticus 15:14-17).
Grant that man received at his creation a power of acquiring life or death;
what, then, if we, on the other hand, can reply that he has lost it? Assuredly
I have no intention to contradict Solomon, who asserts that "God has made
man upright;" that "they have sought out many inventions," (Eccl. 7:29).
But since man, by degenerating, has made shipwreck of himself and all his
blessings, it certainly does not follow, that every thing attributed to
his nature, as originally constituted, applies to it now when vitiated
and degenerate. Therefore, not only to my opponents, but to the author
of Ecclesiasticus himself (whoever he may have been), this is my answer:
If you mean to tell man that in himself there is a power of acquiring salvation,
your authority with us is not so great as, in the least degree, to prejudice
the undoubted word of God; but if only wishing to curb the malignity of
the fleshy which by transferring the blame of its own wickedness to God,
is wont to catch at a vain defence, you say that rectitude was given to
man, in order to make it apparent he was the cause of his own destruction,
I willingly assent. Only agree with me in this, that it is by his own fault
he is stript of the ornaments in which the Lord at first attired him, and
then let us unite in acknowledging that what he now wants is a physician,
and not a defender.
19. There is
nothing more frequent in their mouths than the parable of the traveller
who fell among thieves, and was left half dead (Luke 10:32). I am aware
that it is a common idea with almost all writers, that under the figure
of the traveller is represented the calamity of the human race. Hence our
opponents argue that man was not so mutilated by the robbery of sin and
the devil as not to preserve some remains of his former endowments; because
it is said he was left half dead. For where is the half living, unless
some portion of right will and reason remain? First, were I to deny that
there is any room for their allegory, what could they say? There can be
no doubt that the Fathers invented it contrary to the genuine sense of
the parable. Allegories ought to be carried no further than Scripture expressly
sanctions: so far are they from forming a sufficient basis to found doctrines
upon. And were I so disposed I might easily find the means of tearing up
this fiction by the roots. The Word of God leaves no half life to man,
but teaches, that, in regard to life and happiness, he has utterly perished.
Paul, when he speaks of our redemption, says not that the half dead are
cured (Eph. 2:5, 6; 5:14) but that those who were dead are raised up. He
does not call upon the half dead to receive the illumination of Christ,
but upon those who are asleep and buried. In the same way our Lord himself
says, "The hour is coming, and now is, when the dead shall hear the voice
of the Son of God," (John 5:25). How can they presume to set up a flimsy
allegory in opposition to so many clear statements? But be it that this
allegory is good evidence, what can they extort out of it? Man is half
dead, therefore there is some soundness in him. True! he has a mind capable
of understanding, though incapable of attaining to heavenly and spiritual
wisdom; he has some discernment of what is honourable; he has some sense
of the Divinity, though he cannot reach the true knowledge of God. But
to what do these amount? They certainly do not refute the doctrine of Augustine--a
doctrine confirmed by the common suffrages even of the Schoolmen, that
after the fall, the free gifts on which salvation depends were withdrawn,
and natural gifts corrupted and defiled (supra, chap. 2 sec. 2).
Let it stand, therefore, as an indubitable truth, which no engines can
shake, that the mind of man is so entirely alienated from the righteousness
of God that he cannot conceive, desire, or design any thing but what is
wicked, distorted, foul, impure, and iniquitous; that his heart is so thoroughly
envenomed by sin that it can breathe out nothing but corruption and rottenness;
that if some men occasionally make a show of goodness, their mind is ever
interwoven with hypocrisy and deceit, their soul inwardly bound with the
fetters of wickedness.
CHAPTER 6.
REDEMPTION FOR MAN LOST TO BE SOUGHT
IN CHRIST.
The parts of this chapter
are, I. The excellence of the doctrine of Christ the Redeemer--a doctrine
always entertained by the Church, sec. 1. II. Christ, the Mediator in both
dispensations, was offered to the faith of the pious Israelites and people
of old, as is plain from the institution of sacrifice, the calling of Abraham's
family, and the elevation of David and his posterity, sec. 2. III. Hence
the consolation, strength, hope, and confidence of the godly under the
Law, Christ being offered to them in various ways by their heavenly Father.
Sections.
1. The knowledge of God the Creator
of no avail without faith in Christ the Redeemer. First reason. Second
reason strengthened by the testimony of an Apostle. Conclusion. This doctrine
entertained by the children of God in all ages from the beginning of the
world. Error of throwing open heaven to the heathen, who know nothing of
Christ. The pretexts for this refuted by passages of Scripture.
2. God never was propitious to the
ancient Israelites without Christ the Mediator. First reason founded on
the institution of sacrifice. Second reason founded on the calling of Abraham.
Third reason founded on the elevation of David's family to regal dignity,
and confirmed by striking passages of Scripture.
3. Christ the solace ever promised
to the afflicted; the banner of faith and hope always erected. This confirmed
by various passages of Scripture.
4. The Jews taught to have respect
to Christ. This teaching sanctioned by our Saviour himself. The common
saying, that God is the object of faith, requires to be explained and modified.
Conclusion of this discussion concerning Christ. No saving knowledge of
God in the heathen.
1. THE whole human race having been
undone in the person of Adam, the excellence and dignity of our origin,
as already described, is so far from availing us, that it rather turns
to our greater disgrace, until God, who does not acknowledge man when defiled
and corrupted by sin as his own work, appear as a Redeemer in the person
of his only begotten Son. Since our fall from life unto death, all that
knowledge of God the Creator, of which we have discoursed, would be useless,
were it not followed up by faith, holding forth God to us as a Father in
Christ. The natural course undoubtedly was, that the fabric of the world
should be a school in which we might learn piety, and from it pass to eternal
life and perfect felicity. But after looking at the perfection beheld wherever
we turn our eye, above and below, we are met by the divine malediction,
which, while it involves innocent creatures in our fault, of necessity
fills our own souls with despair. For although God is still pleased in
many ways to manifest his paternal favour towards us, we cannot, from a
mere survey of the world, infer that he is a Father. Conscience urging
us within, and showing that sin is a just ground for our being forsaken,
will not allow us to think that God accounts or treats us as sons. In addition
to this are our sloth and ingratitude. Our minds are so blinded that they
cannot perceive the truth, and all our senses are so corrupt that we wickedly
rob God of his glory. Wherefore, we must conclude with Paul, "After that
in the wisdom of God the world by wisdom knew not God, it pleased God by
the foolishness of preaching to save them that believe," (1 Cor. 1:21).
By the "wisdom of God," he designates this magnificent theatre of heaven
and earth replenished with numberless wonders, the wise contemplation of
which should have enabled us to know God. But this we do with little profit;
and, therefore, he invites us to faith in Christ,--faith which, by a semblance
of foolishness, disgusts the unbeliever. Therefore, although the preaching
of the cross is not in accordance with human wisdom, we must, however,
humbly embrace it if we would return to God our Maker, from whom we are
estranged, that he may again become our Father. It is certain that after
the fall of our first parent, no knowledge of God without a Mediator was
effectual to salvation. Christ speaks not of his own age merely, but embraces
all ages, when he says "This is life eternal that they might know thee
the only true God, and Jesus Christ, whom thou hast sent," (John 17:3).
The more shameful therefore is the presumption of those who throw heaven
open to the unbelieving and profane, in the absence of that grace which
Scripture uniformly describes as the only door by which we enter into life.
Should any confine our Saviour's words to the period subsequent to the
promulgation of the Gospel, the refutation is at hand; since on a ground
common to all ages and nations, it is declared, that those who are estranged
from God, and as such, are under the curse, the children of wrath, cannot
be pleasing to God until they are reconciled. To this we may add the answer
which our Saviour gave to the Samaritan woman "Ye worship ye know not what;
we know what we worship: for salvation is of the Jews," (John 4:22). By
these words, he both charges every Gentile religion with falsehood, and
assigns the reason--viz. that under the Law the Redeemer was promised to
the chosen people only, and that, consequently, no worship was ever pleasing
to God in which respect was not had to Christ. Hence also Paul affirms,
that all the Gentiles were "without God," and deprived of the hope of life.
Now, since John teaches that there was life in Christ from the beginning,
and that the whole world had lost it (John 1:4), it is necessary to return
to that fountain; And, accordingly, Christ declares that inasmuch as he
is a propitiator, he is life. And, indeed, the inheritance of heaven belongs
to none but the sons of God (John 15:6). Now, it were most incongruous
to give the place and rank of sons to any who have not been engrafted into
the body of the only begotten Son. And John distinctly testifies that those
become the sons of God who believe in his name. But as it is not my intention
at present formally to discuss the subject of faith in Christ, it is enough
to have thus touched on it in passing.
2. Hence it is
that God never showed himself propitious to his ancient people, nor gave
them any hope of grace without a Mediator. I say nothing of the sacrifices
of the Law, by which believers were plainly and openly taught that salvation
was not to be found anywhere but in the expiation which Christ alone completed.
All I maintain is that the prosperous and happy state of the Church was
always founded in the person of Christ. For although God embraced the whole
posterity of Abraham in his covenant, yet Paul properly argues (Gal. 3:16),
that Christ was truly the seed in which all the nations of the earth were
to be blessed, since we know that all who were born of Abraham, according
to the flesh, were not accounted the seed. To omit Ishmael and others,
how came it that of the two sons of Isaac, the twin brothers, Esau and
Jacob, while yet in the womb, the one was chosen and the other rejected?
Nay, how came it that the first-born was rejected, and the younger alone
admitted? Moreover, how happens it that the majority are rejected? It is
plain, therefore, that the seed of Abraham is considered chiefly in one
head, and that the promised salvation is not attained without coming to
Christ, whose office it is to gather together those which were scattered
abroad. Thus the primary adoption of the chosen people depended on the
grace of the Mediator. Although it is not expressed in very distinct terms
in Moses, it, however, appears to have been commonly known to all the godly.
For before a king was appointed over the Israelites, Hannah, the mother
of Samuel, describing the happiness of the righteous, speaks thus in her
song, "He shall give strength unto his king, and exalt the horn of his
anointed;" meaning by these words, that God would bless his Church. To
this corresponds the prediction, which is afterwards added, "I will raise
me up a faithful priest, and he shall walk before mine anointed for ever,"
(1 Sam. 2:10, 35). And there can be no doubt that our heavenly Father intended
that a living image of Christ should be seen in David and his posterity.
Accordingly, exhorting the righteous to fear Him, he bids them "Kiss the
Son," (Psalm 2:12). Corresponding to this is the passage in the Gospel,
"He that honoureth not the Son, honoureth not the Father," (John 5:23).
Therefore, though the kingdom was broken up by the revolt of the ten tribes,
yet the covenant which God had made in David and his successors behaved
to stand, as is also declared by his Prophets, "Howbeit I will not take
the whole kingdom out of his hand: but I will make him prince all the days
of his life for David my servant's sake," (1 Kings 11:34). The same thing
is repeated a second and third time. It is also expressly said, "I will
for this afflict the seed of David, but not for ever," (1 Kings 11:39).
Some time afterwards it was said, "Nevertheless, for David's sake did the
Lord his God give him a lamp in Jerusalem, to set up his son after him,
and to establish Jerusalem," (1 Kings 15:4). And when matters were bordering
on destruction, it was again said, "Yet the Lord would not destroy Judah
for David his servant's sake, as he had promised to give him alway a light,
and to his children," (2 Kings 8:19).
The sum of the
whole comes to this--David, all others being excluded, was chosen to be
the person in whom the good pleasure of the Lord should dwell; as it is
said elsewhere, "He forsook the tabernacle of Shiloh;" "Moreover, he refused
the tabernacle of Joseph, and chose not the tribe of Ephraim;" "But chose
the tribe of Judah, the mount Zion which he loved;" "He chose David also
his servant, and took him from the sheep folds: from following the ewes
great with young he brought him to feed Jacob his people, and Israel his
inheritance," (Ps. 78:60, 67, 70, 71). In fine, God, in thus preserving
his Church, intended that its security and salvation should depend on Christ
as its head. Accordingly, David exclaims, "The Lord is their strength,
and he is the saving strength of his anointed;" and then prays "Save thy
people, and bless thine inheritance;" intimating, that the safety of the
Church was indissolubly connected with the government of Christ. In the
same sense he elsewhere says, "Save, Lord: let the king hear us when we
call," (Ps. 20:9). These words plainly teach that believers, in applying
for the help of God, had their sole confidence in this--that they were
under the unseen government of the King. This may be inferred from another
psalm, "Save now, I beseech thee O Lord: Blessed be he that cometh in the
name of the Lord," (Ps. 118:25, 26). Here it is obvious that believers
are invited to Christ, in the assurance that they will be safe when entirely
in his hand. To the same effect is another prayer, in which the whole Church
implores the divine mercy "Let thy hand be upon the Man of thy right hand,
upon the Son of man, whom thou madest strong (or best fitted) for thyself,"
(Ps. 80:17). For though the author of the psalm laments the dispersion
of the whole nations he prays for its revival in him who is sole Head.
After the people were led away into captivity, the land laid waste, and
matters to appearance desperate, Jeremiah, lamenting the calamity of the
Church, especially complains, that by the destruction of the kingdom the
hope of believers was cut off; "The breath of our nostrils, the anointed
of the Lord, was taken in their pits, of whom we said, Under his shadow
we shall live among the heathen," (Lam. 4:20). From all this it is abundantly
plain, that as the Lord cannot be propitious to the human race without
a Mediator, Christ was always held forth to the holy Fathers under the
Law as the object of their faith.
3. Moreover when
comfort is promised in affliction, especially when the deliverance of the
Church is described, the banner of faith and hope in Christ is unfurled.
"Thou wentest forth for the salvation of thy people, even for salvation
with thine anointed," says Habakkuk (3:13). And whenever mention is made
in the Prophets of the renovation of the Church, the people are directed
to the promise made to David, that his kingdom would be for ever. And there
is nothing strange in this, since otherwise there would have been no stability
in the covenant. To this purpose is the remarkable prophecy in Isaiah 7:14.
After seeing that the unbelieving king Ahab repudiated what he had testified
regarding the deliverance of Jerusalem from siege and its immediate safety,
he passes as it were abruptly to the Messiah, "Behold, a virgin shall conceive
and bear a son, and shall call his name Emmanuel;" intimating indirectly,
that though the king and his people wickedly rejected the promise offered
to them, as if they were bent on causing the faith of God to fail, the
covenant would not be defeated--the Redeemer would come in his own time.
In fine, all the prophets, to show that God was placable, were always careful
to bring forward that kingdom of David, on which redemption and eternal
salvation depended. Thus in Isaiah it is said, "I will make an everlasting
covenant with you, even the sure mercies of David. Behold, I have given
him for a witness to the people," (Isa. 55:3, 4); intimating, that believers,
in calamitous circumstances, could have no hope, had they not this testimony
that God would be ready to hear them. In the same way, to revive their
drooping spirits, Jeremiah says, "Behold, the days come, saith the Lord,
that I will raise unto David a righteous Branch, and a King shall reign
and prosper, and shall execute judgment and justice in the earth. In his
days Judah shall be saved, and Israel shall dwell safely," (Jer. 23:5,
6). In Ezekiel also it is said, "I will set up one Shepherd over them,
and he shall feed them, even my servant David; he shall feed them, and
he shall be their shepherd. And I the Lord will be their God, and my servant
David a prince among them: I the Lord have spoken it. And I will make with
them a covenant of peace," (Ezek. 34:23, 24, 25). And again, after discoursing
of this wondrous renovation, he says, "David my servant shall be king over
them: and they all shall have one shepherd." "Moreover, I will make a covenant
of peace with them; it shall be an everlasting covenant with them," (Ezek.
37:24-26). I select a few passages out of many, because I merely wish to
impress my readers with the fact, that the hope of believers was ever treasured
up in Christ alone. All the other prophets concur in this. Thus Hosea,
"Then shall the children of Judah and the children of Israel be gathered
together, and appoint themselves one head," (Hosea 1:11). This he afterwards
explains in clearer terms, "Afterward shall the children of Israel return,
and seek the Lord their God, and David their king," (Hosea 3:5). Micas,
also speaking of the return of the people, says expressly, "Their king
shall pass before them, and the Lord on the head of them," (Micah 2:13).
So Amos, in predicting the renovation of the people, says "In that day
will I raise up the tabernacle of David that is fallen, and close up the
breaches thereof; and I will raise up the ruins, and I will build it as
in the days of old," (Amos 9:11); in other words, the only banner of salvation
was, the exaltation of the family of David to regal splendour, as fulfilled
in Christ. Hence, too, Zechariah, as nearer in time to the manifestation
of Christ, speaks more plainly, "Rejoice greatly, O daughter of Zion; shout,
O daughter of Jerusalem: behold, thy King cometh unto thee: he is just,
and having salvation," (Zech. 9:9). This corresponds to the passage already
quoted from the Psalms, "The Lord is their strength, and he is the saving
health of their anointed." Here salvation is extended from the head to
the whole body.
4. By familiarising
the Jews with these prophecies, God intended to teach them, that in seeking
for deliverance, they should turn their eyes directly towards Christ. And
though they had sadly degenerated, they never entirely lost the knowledge
of this general principle, that God, by the hand of Christ, would be the
deliverer of the Church, as he had promised to David; and that in this
way only the free covenant by which God had adopted his chosen people would
be fulfilled. Hence it was, that on our Saviour's entry into Jerusalem,
shortly before his death, the children shouted, "Hosannah to the son of
David," (Mt. 21:9). For there seems to have been a hymn known to all, and
in general use, in which they sung that the only remaining pledge which
they had of the divine mercy was the promised advent of a Redeemer. For
this reason, Christ tells his disciples to believe in him, in order that
they might have a distinct and complete belief in God, "Ye believe in God,
believe also in me," (John 14:1). For although, properly speaking, faith
rises from Christ to the Father, he intimates, that even when it leans
on God, it gradually vanishes away, unless he himself interpose to give
it solid strength. The majesty of God is too high to be scaled up to by
mortals, who creep like worms on the earth. Therefore, the common saying
that God is the object of faith (Lactantius, lib. 4 c. 16), requires to
be received with some modification. When Christ is called the image of
the invisible God (Col. 1:15), the expression is not used without cause,
but is designed to remind us that we can have no knowledge of our salvation,
until we behold God in Christ. For although the Jewish scribes had by their
false glosses darkened what the Prophets had taught concerning the Redeemer,
yet Christ assumed it to be a fact, received, as it were, with public consent,
that there was no other remedy in desperate circumstances, no other mode
of delivering the Church than the manifestation
of the Mediator. It is
true, that the fact adverted to by Paul was not so generally known as it
ought to have been--viz. that Christ is the end of the Law (Rom. 10:4),
though this is both true, and clearly appears both from the Law and the
Prophets. I am not now, however, treating of faith, as we shall elsewhere
have a fitter place (Book 3 Chap. 2), but what I wish to impress upon my
readers in this way is, that the first step in piety is, to acknowledge
that God is a Father, to defend, govern, and cherish us, until he brings
us to the eternal inheritance of his kingdom; that hence it is plain, as
we lately observed, there is no saving knowledge of God without Christ,
and that, consequently, from the beginning of the world Christ was held
forth to all the elect as the object of their faith and confidence. In
this sense, Irenæus says, that the Father, who is boundless in himself,
is bounded in the Son, because he has accommodated himself to our capacity,
lest our minds should be swallowed up by the immensity of his glory (Irenaeus,
lib. 4 cap. 8). Fanatics, not attending to this, distort a useful sentiment
into an impious dream,187 as if Christ had only a share of the
Godhead, as a part taken from a whole; whereas the meaning merely is, that
God is comprehended in Christ alone. The saying of John was always true,
"whosoever denieth the Son, the same has not the Father," (1 John 2:23).
For though in old time there were many who boasted that they worshipped
the Supreme Deity, the Maker of heaven and earth, yet as they had no Mediator,
it was impossible for them truly to enjoy the mercy of God, so as to feel
persuaded that he was their Father. Not holding the head, that is, Christ,
their knowledge of God was evanescent; and hence they at length fell away
to gross and foul superstitions betraying their ignorance, just as the
Turks in the present day, who, though proclaiming, with full throat, that
the Creator of heaven and earth is their God, yet by their rejection of
Christ, substitute an idol in his place.
CHAPTER 7.
THE LAW GIVEN, NOT TO RETAIN A PEOPLE
FOR ITSELF, BUT TO KEEP ALIVE THE HOPE OF SALVATION IN CHRIST UNTIL HIS
ADVENT.
The divisions of this
chapter are, I. The Moral and Ceremonial Law a schoolmaster to bring us
to Christ, sec. 1, 2. II. This true of the Moral Law, especially its conditional
promises. These given for the best reasons. In what respect the observance
of the Moral Law is said to be impossible, sec. 3-5. III. Of the threefold
office and use of the Moral Law, sec. 6-12. Antinomians refuted, sec. 13.
IV. What the abrogation of the Law, Moral and Ceremonial, sec. 14-17.
Sections.
1. The whole system of religion delivered
by the hand of Moses, in many ways pointed to Christ. This exemplified
in the case of sacrifices, ablutions, and an endless series of ceremonies.
This proved, 1. By the declared purpose of God; 2. By the nature of the
ceremonies themselves; 3. From the nature of God; 4. From the grace offered
to the Jews; 5. From the consecration of the priests.
2. Proof continued. 6. From a consideration
of the kingdom erected in the family of David. 7. From the end of the ceremonies.
8. From the end of the Moral Law.
3. A more ample exposition of the
last proof. The Moral Law leads believers to Christ. Showing the perfect
righteousness required by God, it convinces us of our inability to fulfil
it. It thus denies us life, adjudges us to death, and so urges us to seek
deliverance in Christ.
4. The promises of the Law, though
conditional, founded on the best reason. This reason explained.
5. No inconsistency in giving a law,
the observance of which is impossible. This proved from reason, and confirmed
by Scripture. Another confirmation from Augustine.
6. A consideration of the office
and use of the Moral Law shows that it leads to Christ. The Law, while
it describes the righteousness which is acceptable to God, proves that
every man is unrighteous.
7. The Law fitly compared to a mirror,
which shows us our wretchedness. This derogates not in any degree from
its excellence.
8. When the Law discloses our guilt,
we should not despond, but flee to the mercy of God. How this may be done.
9. Confirmation of the first use
of the Moral Law from various passages in Augustine.
10. A second use of the Law is to
curb sinners. This most necessary for the good of the community at large;
and this in respect not only of the reprobate, but also of the elect, previous
to regeneration. This confirmed by the authority of an Apostle.
11. The Law showing our wretchedness,
disposes us to admit the remedy. It also tends to keep us in our duty.
Confirmation from general experience.
12. The third and most appropriate
use of the Law respects the elect. 1. It instructs and teaches them to
make daily progress in doing the will of God. 2. Urges them by exhortation
to obedience. Testimony of David. How he is to be reconciled with the Apostle.
13. The profane heresy of the Antinomians
must be exploded. Argument founded on a passage in David, and another in
Moses.
14. Last part of the chapter treating
of the abrogation of the Law. In what respect any part of the Moral Law
abrogated.
15. The curse of the Law how abrogated.
16. Of the abrogation of the Ceremonial
Law in regard to the observance only.
17. The reason assigned by the Apostle
applicable not to the Moral Law, but to ceremonial observances only. These
abrogated, not only because they separated the Jews from the Gentiles,
but still more because they were a kind of formal instruments to attest
our guilt and impunity. Christ, by destroying these, is justly said to
have taken away the handwriting that was against us, and nailed it to his
cross.
1. FROM the whole course of the observations
now made, we may infer, that the Law was not superadded about four hundred
years after the death of Abraham in order that it might lead the chosen
people away from Christ, but, on the contrary, to keep them in suspense
until his advent; to inflame their desire, and confirm their expectation,
that they might not become dispirited by the long delay. By the Law, I
understand not only the Ten Commandments, which contain a complete rule
of life, but the whole system of religion delivered by the hand of Moses.
Moses was not appointed as a Lawgiver, to do away with the blessing promised
to the race of Abraham; nay, we see that he is constantly reminding the
Jews of the free covenant which had been made with their fathers, and of
which they were heirs; as if he had been sent for the purpose of renewing
it. This is most clearly manifested by the ceremonies. For what could be
more vain or frivolous than for men to reconcile themselves to God, by
offering him the foul odour produced by burning the fat of beasts? or to
wipe away their own impurities by be sprinkling themselves with water or
blood? In short, the whole legal worship (if considered by itself apart
from the types and shadows of corresponding truth) is a mere mockery. Wherefore,
both in Stephen's address (Acts 7:44), and in the Epistle to the Hebrews,
great weight is justly given to the passage in which God says to Moses,
"Look that thou make them after the pattern which was showed thee in the
mount," (Exod. 25:40). Had there not been some spiritual end to which they
were directed, the Jews, in the observance of them, would have deluded
themselves as much as the Gentiles in their vanities. Profane men, who
have never made religion their serious study, cannot bear without disgust
to hear of such a multiplicity of rites. They not merely wonder why God
fatigued his ancient people with such a mass of ceremonies, but they despise
and ridicule them as childish toys. This they do, because they attend not
to the end; from which, if the legal figures are separated, they cannot
escape the charge of vanity. But the type shows that God did not enjoin
sacrifice, in order that he might occupy his worshippers with earthly exercises,
but rather that he might raise their minds to something higher. This is
clear even from His own nature. Being a spirit, he is delighted only with
spiritual worship. The same thing is testified by the many passages in
which the Prophets accuse the Jews of stupidity, for imagining that mere
sacrifices have any value in the sight of God. Did they by this mean to
derogate in any respect from the Law? By no means; but as interpreters
of its true meaning, they wished in this way to turn the attention of the
people to the end which they ought to have had in view, but from which
they generally wandered. From the grace offered to the Jews we may certainly
infer, that the law was not a stranger to Christ. Moses declared the end
of the adoption of the Israelites to be, that they should be "a kingdom
of priests, and an holy nation," (Exod. 19:6). This they could not attain,
without a greater and more excellent atonement than the blood of beasts.
For what could be less in accordance with reason, than that the sons of
Adams who, from hereditary taint, are all born the slaves of sin, should
be raised to royal dignity, and in this way made partakers of the glory
of God, if the noble distinction were not derived from some other source?
How, moreover, could the priestly office exist in vigour among those whose
vices rendered them abominable in the sight of God, if they were not consecrated
in a holy head? Wherefore, Peter elegantly transposes the words of Moses,
teaching that the fulness of grace, of which the Jews had a foretaste under
the Law, is exhibited in Christ, "Ye are a chosen generation, a royal priesthood,"
(1 Pet. 2:9). The transposition of the words intimates that those to whom
Christ has appeared in the Gospel, have obtained more than their fathers,
inasmuch as they are all endued with priestly and royal honour, and can,
therefore, trusting to their Mediator, appear with boldness in the presence
of God.
2. And it is
to be observed, by the way, that the kingdom, which was at length erected
in the family of David, is part of the Law, and is comprehended under the
dispensation of Moses; whence it follows, that, as well in the whole tribe
of Levi as in the posterity of David, Christ was exhibited to the eyes
of the Israelites as in a double mirror. For, as I lately observed (sec.
1), in no other way could those who were the slaves of sin and death, and
defiled with corruption, be either kings or priests. Hence appears the
perfect truth of Paul's statement, "The law was our schoolmaster to bring
us unto Christ," "till the seed should come to whom the promise was made"
(Gal. 3:24, 19). For Christ not yet having been made familiarly known to
the Jews, they were like children whose weakness could not bear a full
knowledge of heavenly things. How they were led to Christ by the ceremonial
law has already been adverted to, and may be made more intelligible by
several passages in the Prophets. Although they were required, in order
to appease God, to approach him daily with new sacrifices, yet Isaiah promises,
that all their sins would be expiated by one single sacrifice, and with
this Daniel concurs (Isa. 53:5; Dan. 9:26, 27). The priests appointed from
the tribe of Levi entered the sanctuary, but it was once said of a single
priest, "The Lord has sworn, and will not repent, Thou art a priest for
ever, after the order of Melchizedek," (Ps. 110:4). The unction of oil
was then visible, but Daniel in vision declares that there will be another
unction. Not to dwell on this, the author of the Epistle to the Hebrews
proves clearly, and at length, from the fourth to the eleventh chapter,
that ceremonies were vain, and of no value, unless as bringing us to Christ.
In regard to the Ten Commandments, we must, in like manner, attend to the
statement of Paul, that "Christ is the end of the law for righteousness
to every one that believeth," (Rom. 10:4); and, again, that ministers of
the new testament were "not of the letter, but of the spirit: for the letter
killeth, but the split giveth life," (2 Cor. 3:6). The former passage intimates,
that it is in vain to teach righteousness by precept, until Christ bestow
it by free imputation, and the regeneration of the Spirit. Hence he properly
calls Christ the end or fulfilling of the Law, because it would avail us
nothing to know what God demands did not Christ come to the succour of
those who are labouring, and oppressed under an intolerable yoke and burden.
In another place, he says that the Law "was added because of transgressions,"
(Gal. 3:19), that it might humble men under a sense of their condemnation.
Moreover, inasmuch as this is the only true preparation for Christ, the
statements, though made in different words, perfectly agree with each other.
But because he had to dispute with perverse teachers, who pretended that
men merited justification by the works of the Law, he was sometimes obliged,
in refuting their error, to speak of the Law in a more restricted sense,
merely as law, though, in other respects, the covenant of free adoption
is comprehended under it.
3. But in order
that a sense of guilt may urge us to seek for pardon, it is of importance
to know how our being instructed in the Moral Law renders us more inexcusable.
If it is true, that a perfect righteousness is set before us in the Law,
it follows, that the complete observance of it is perfect righteousness
in the sight of God; that is, a righteousness by which a man may be deemed
and pronounced righteous at the divine tribunal. Wherefore Moses, after
promulgating the Law, hesitates not to call heaven and earth to witness,
that he had set life and death, good and evil, before the people. Nor can
it be denied, that the reward of eternal salvation, as promised by the
Lord, awaits the perfect obedience of the Law (Deut. 30:19). Again, however,
it is of importance to understand in what way we perform that obedience
for which we justly entertain the hope of that reward. For of what use
is it to see that the reward of eternal life depends on the observance
of the Law, unless it moreover appears whether it be in our power in that
way to attain to eternal life? Herein, then, the weakness of the Law is
manifested; for, in none of us is that righteousness of the Law manifested,
and, therefore, being excluded from the promises of life, we again fall
under the curse. I state not only what happens, but what must necessarily
happen. The doctrine of the Law transcending our capacity, a man may indeed
look from a distance at the promises held forth, but he cannot derive any
benefit from them. The only thing, therefore, remaining for him is, from
their excellence to form a better estimate of his own misery, while he
considers that the hope of salvation is cut off, and he is threatened with
certain death. On the other hand, those fearful denunciations which strike
not at a few individuals, but at every individual without exceptions rise
up; rise up, I say, and, with inexorable severity, pursue us; so that nothing
but instant death is presented by the Law.
4. Therefore,
if we look merely to the Law, the result must be despondency, confusion,
and despair, seeing that by it we are all cursed and condemned, while we
are kept far away from the blessedness which it holds forth to its observers.
Is the Lord, then, you will ask, only sporting with us? Is it not the next
thing to mockery, to hold out the hope of happiness, to invite and exhort
us to it, to declare that it is set before us, while all the while the
entrance to it is precluded and quite shut up? I answer, Although the promises,
in so far as they are conditional, depend on a perfect obedience of the
Law, which is nowhere to be found, they have not, however, been given in
vain. For when we have learned, that the promises would be fruitless and
unavailing, did not God accept us of his free goodness, without any view
to our works, and when, having so learned, we, by faith, embrace the goodness
thus offered in the gospel, the promises, with all their annexed conditions,
are fully accomplished. For God, while bestowing all things upon us freely,
crowns his goodness by not disdaining our imperfect obedience; forgiving
its deficiencies, accepting it as if it were complete, and so bestowing
upon us the full amount of what the Law has promised. But as this point
will be more fully discussed in treating of justification by faith, we
shall not follow it further at present.
5. What has been
said as to the impossible observance of the Law, it will be proper briefly
to explain and confirm, the general opinion being, that nothing can be
more absurd. Hence Jerome has not hesitated to denounce anathema against
it.188 What Jerome thought, I care not; let us inquire what
is the truth. I will not here enter into a long and intricate discussion
on the various kinds of possibility. By impossible, I mean, that which
never was, and, being prevented by the ordination and decree of God, never
will be. I say, that if we go back to the remotest period, we shall not
find a single saint who, clothed with a mortal body, ever attained to such
perfection as to love the Lord with all his heart, and soul, and mind,
and strength; and, on the other hand, not one who has not felt the power
of concupiscence. Who can deny this? I am aware, indeed of a kind of saints
whom a foolish superstition imagines, and whose purity the angels of heaven
scarcely equal. This, however, is repugnant both to Scripture and experience.
But I say further, that no saint ever will attain to perfection, so long
as he is in the body. Scripture bears clear testimony to this effect: "There
is no man that sinneth not," saith Solomon (1 Kings 8:46). David says,
"In thy sight shall no man living be justified," (Psalm 143:2). Job also,
in numerous passages, affirms the same thing. But the clearest of all is
Paul, who declares that "the flesh lusteth against the Spirit, and the
Spirit against the flesh," (Gal. 5:17). And he proves, that "as many as
are of the works of the law are under the curse," for the simple reason,
that it is written, "Cursed is every one that continueth not in all things
which are written in the book of the law to do them," (Gal. 3:10; Deut.
27:26); intimating, or rather assuming it as confessed, that none can so
continue. But whatever has been declared by Scripture must be regarded
as perpetual, and hence necessary. The Pelagians annoyed Augustine with
the sophism, that it was insulting to God to hold, that he orders more
than believers are able, by his grace, to perform; and he, in order to
evade it, acknowledged that the Lord was able, if he chose, to raise a
mortal man to angelic purity; but that he had never done, and never would
do it, because so the Scripture had declared (Augustine, lib. de Nat. et
Grat). This I deny not: but I add, that there is no use in absurdly disputing
concerning the power of God in opposition to his truth; and therefore there
is no ground for cavilling, when it is said that that thing cannot be,
which the Scriptures declare will never be. But if it is the word that
is objected to, I refer to the answer which our Saviour gave to his disciples
when they asked, "Who then can be saved?" "With men," said he, "this is
impossible; but with God all things are possible" (Mt. 19:25). Augustine
argues in the most convincing manner, that while in the flesh, we never
can give God the love which we owe him. "Love so follows knowledge, that
no man can perfectly love God who has not previously a full comprehension
of his goodness," (Augustin. de Spiritu et Litera, towards the end, and
elsewhere). So long as we are pilgrims in the world, we see through a glass
darkly, and therefore our love is imperfect. Let it therefore be held incontrovertible,
that, in consequence of the feebleness of our nature, it is impossible
for us, so long as we are in the flesh, to fulfil the law. This will also
be proved elsewhere from the writings of Paul (Rom. 8:3).189
6. That the whole
matter may be made clearer, let us take a succinct view of the office and
use of the Moral Law. Now this office and use seems to me to consist of
three parts. First, by exhibiting the righteousness of God,--in other words,
the righteousness which alone is acceptable to God,--it admonishes every
one of his own unrighteousness, certiorates, convicts, and finally condemns
him. This is necessary, in order that man, who is blind and intoxicated
with self-love, may be brought at once to know and to confess his weakness
and impurity. For until his vanity is made perfectly manifest, he is puffed
up with infatuated confidence in his own powers, and never can be brought
to feel their feebleness so long as he measures them by a standard of his
own choice. So soon, however, as he begins to compare them with the requirements
of the Law, he has something to tame his presumption. How high soever his
opinion of his own powers may be, he immediately feels that they pant under
the heavy load, then totter and stumble, and finally fall and give way.
He, then, who is schooled by the Law, lays aside the arrogance which formerly
blinded him. In like manner must he be cured of pride, the other disease
under which we have said that he labours. So long as he is permitted to
appeal to his own judgment, he substitutes a hypocritical for a real righteousness,
and, contented with this, sets up certain factitious observances in opposition
to the grace of God. But after he is forced to weigh his conduct in the
balance of the Law, renouncing all dependence on this fancied righteousness,
he sees that he is at an infinite distance from holiness, and, on the other
hand, that he teems with innumerable vices of which he formerly seemed
free. The recesses in which concupiscence lies hid are so deep and tortuous
that they easily elude our view; and hence the Apostle had good reason
for saying, "I had not known lust, except the law had said, Thou shalt
not covet." For, if it be not brought forth from its lurkingplaces, it
miserably destroys in secret before its fatal sting is discerned.
7. Thus the Law
is a kind of mirror. As in a mirror we discover any stains upon our face,
so in the Law we behold, first, our impotence; then, in consequence of
it, our iniquity; and, finally, the curse, as the consequence of both.
He who has no power of following righteousness is necessarily plunged in
the mire of iniquity, and this iniquity is immediately followed by the
curse. Accordingly, the greater the transgression of which the Law convicts
us, the severer the judgment to which we are exposed. To this effect is
the Apostle's declaration, that "by the law is the knowledge of sin," (Rom.
3:20). By these words, he only points out the first office of the Law as
experienced by sinners not yet regenerated. In conformity to this, it is
said, "the law entered that the offence might abound;" and, accordingly,
that it is "the ministration of death;" that it "worketh wrath" and kills
(Rom. 5:20; 2 Cor. 3:7; Rom. 4:15). For there cannot be a doubt that the
clearer the consciousness of guilt, the greater the increase of sin; because
then to transgression a rebellious feeling against the Lawgiver is added.
All that remains for the Law, is to arm the wrath of God for the destruction
of the sinner; for by itself it can do nothing but accuse, condemn, and
destroy him. Thus Augustine says, "If the Spirit of grace be absent, the
law is present only to convict and slay us."190 But to say this
neither insults the law, nor derogates in any degree from its excellence.
Assuredly, if our whole will were formed and disposed to obedience, the
mere knowledge of the law would be sufficient for salvation; but since
our carnal and corrupt nature is at enmity with the Divine law, and is
in no degree amended by its discipline, the consequence is, that the law
which, if it had been properly attended to, would have given life, becomes
the occasion of sin and death. When all are convicted of transgression,
the more it declares the righteousness of God, the more, on the other hand,
it discloses our iniquity; the more certainly it assures us that life and
salvation are treasured up as the reward of righteousness, the more certainly
it assures us that the unrighteous will perish. So far, however are these
qualities from throwing disgrace on the Law, that their chief tendency
is to give a brighter display of the divine goodness. For they show that
it is only our weakness and depravity that prevents us from enjoying the
blessedness which the law openly sets before us. Hence additional sweetness
is given to divine grace, which comes to our aid without the law, and additional
loveliness to the mercy which confers it, because they proclaim that God
is never weary in doing good, and in loading us with new gifts.
8. But while
the unrighteousness and condemnation of all are attested by the law, it
does not follow (if we make the proper use of it) that we are immediately
to give up all hope and rush headlong on despair. No doubt, it has some
such effect upon the reprobate, but this is owing to their obstinacy. With
the children of God the effect is different. The Apostle testifies that
the law pronounces its sentence of condemnation in order "that every mouth
may be stopped, and all the world may become guilty before God," (Rom.
3:19). In another place, however, the same Apostle declares, that "God
has concluded them all in unbelief;" not that he might destroy all, or
allow all to perish, but that "he might have mercy upon all," (Rom. 11:32);
in other words, that divesting themselves of an absurd opinion of their
own virtue, they may perceive how they are wholly dependent on the hand
of God; that feeling how naked and destitute they are, they may take refuge
in his mercy, rely upon it, and cover themselves up entirely with it; renouncing
all righteousness and merit, and clinging to mercy alone, as offered in
Christ to all who long and look for it in true faith. In the precepts of
the law, God is seen as the rewarder only of perfect righteousness (a righteousness
of which all are destitute), and, on the other hand, as the stern avenger
of wickedness. But in Christ his countenance beams forth full of grace
and gentleness towards poor unworthy sinners.
9. There are
many passages in Augustine, as to the utility of the law in leading us
to implore Divine assistance. Thus he writes to Hilary,191 "The
law orders, that we, after attempting to do what is ordered and so feeling
our weakness under the law, may learn to implore the help of grace." In
like manner, he writes to Asellius, "The utility of the law is, that it
convinces man of his weakness, and compels him to apply for the medicine
of grace, which is in Christ." In like manner, he says to Innocentius Romanus,
"The law orders; grace supplies the power of acting." Again, to Valentinus,
"God enjoins what we cannot do, in order that we may know what we have
to ask of him." Again, "The law was given, that it might make you guilty--being
made guilty might fear; fearing, might ask indulgence, not presume on your
own strength." Again, "The law was given, in order to convert a great into
a little man--to show that you have no power of your own for righteousness;
and might thus, poor, needy, and destitute, flee to grace." He afterwards
thus addresses the Almighty, "So do, O Lord, so do, O merciful Lord; command
what cannot be fulfilled; nay, command what cannot be fulfilled, unless
by thy own grace: so that when men feel they have no strength in themselves
to fulfil it, every mouth may be stopped, and no man seem great in his
own eyes. Let all be little ones; let the whole world become guilty before
God." But I am forgetting myself in producing so many passages, since this
holy man wrote a distinct treatise, which he entitled De Spiritu et
Litera. The other branch of this first use he does not describe so
distinctly, either because he knew that it depended on the former, or because
he was not so well aware of it, or because he wanted words in which he
might distinctly and clearly explain its proper meaning. But even in the
reprobate themselves, this first office of the law is not altogether wanting.
They do not, indeed, proceed so far with the children of God as, after
the flesh is cast down, to be renewed in the inner man, and revive again,
but stunned by the first terror, give way to despair. Still it tends to
manifest the equity of the Divine judgment, when their consciences are
thus heaved upon the waves. They would always willingly carp at the judgment
of God; but now, though that judgment is not manifested, still the alarm
produced by the testimony of the law and of their conscience bespeaks their
deserts.
10. The second
office of the Law is, by means of its fearful denunciations and the consequent
dread of punishment, to curb those who, unless forced, have no regard for
rectitude and justice. Such persons are curbed not because their mind is
inwardly moved and affected, but because, as if a bridle were laid upon
them, they refrain their hands from external acts, and internally check
the depravity which would otherwise petulantly burst forth. It is true,
they are not on this account either better or more righteous in the sight
of God. For although restrained by terror or shame, they dare not proceed
to what their mind has conceived, nor give full license to their raging
lust, their heart is by no means trained to fear and obedience. Nay, the
more they restrain themselves, the more they are inflamed, the more they
rage and boil, prepared for any act or outbreak whatsoever were it not
for the terror of the law. And not only so, but they thoroughly detest
the law itself, and execrate the Lawgiver; so that if they could, they
would most willingly annihilate him, because they cannot bear either his
ordering what is right, or his avenging the despisers of his Majesty. The
feeling of all who are not yet regenerate, though in some more, in others
less lively, is, that in regard to the observance of the law, they are
not led by voluntary submission, but dragged by the force of fear. Nevertheless,
this forced and extorted righteousness is necessary for the good of society,
its peace being secured by a provision but for which all things would be
thrown into tumult and confusion. Nay, this tuition is not without its
use, even to the children of God, who, previous to their effectual calling,
being destitute of the Spirit of holiness, freely indulge the lusts of
the flesh. When, by the fear of Divine vengeance, they are deterred from
open outbreakings, though, from not being subdued in mind, they profit
little at present, still they are in some measure trained to bear the yoke
of righteousness, so that when they are called, they are not like mere
novices, studying a discipline of which previously they had no knowledge.
This office seems to be especially in the view of the Apostle, when he
says, "That the law is not made for a righteous man, but for the lawless
and disobedient, for the ungodly and for sinners, for unholy and profane,
for murderers of fathers and murderers of mothers, for manslayers, for
whoremongers, for them that defile themselves with mankind, for men-stealers,
for liars, for perjured persons, and if there be any other thing that is
contrary to sound doctrine," (1 Tim. 1:9, 10). He thus indicates that it
is a restraint on unruly lusts that would otherwise burst all bonds.
11. To both may
be applied the declaration of the Apostle in another place, that "The law
was our schoolmaster to bring us unto Christ," (Gal. 3:24); since there
are two classes of persons, whom by its training it leads to Christ. Some
(of whom we spoke in the first place), from excessive confidence in their
own virtue or righteousness, are unfit to receive the grace of Christ,
until they are completely humbled. This the law does by making them sensible
of their misery, and so disposing them to long for what they previously
imagined they did not want. Others have need of a bridle to restrain them
from giving full scope to their passions, and thereby utterly losing all
desire after righteousness. For where the Spirit of God rules not, the
lusts sometimes so burst forth, as to threaten to drown the soul subjected
to them in forgetfulness and contempt of God; and so they would, did not
God interpose with this remedy. Those, therefore, whom he has destined
to the inheritance of his kingdom, if he does not immediately regenerate,
he, through the works of the law, preserves in fear, against the time of
his visitation, not, indeed, that pure and chaste fear which his children
ought to have, but a fear useful to the extent of instructing them in true
piety according to their capacity. Of this we have so many proofs, that
there is not the least need of an example. For all who have remained for
some time in ignorance of God will confess, as the result of their own
experience, that the law had the effect of keeping them in some degree
in the fear and reverence of God, till, being regenerated by his Spirit,
they began to love him from the heart.
12. The third
use of the Law (being also the principal use, and more closely connected
with its proper end) has respect to believers in whose hearts the Spirit
of God already flourishes and reigns. For although the Law is written and
engraven on their hearts by the finger of God, that is, although they are
so influenced and actuated by the Spirit, that they desire to obey God,
there are two ways in which they still profit in the Law. For it is the
best instrument for enabling them daily to learn with greater truth and
certainty what that will of the Lord is which they aspire to follow, and
to confirm them in this knowledge; just as a servant who desires with all
his soul to approve himself to his master, must still observe, and be careful
to ascertain his master's dispositions, that he may comport himself in
accommodation to them. Let none of us deem ourselves exempt from this necessity,
for none have as yet attained to such a degree of wisdom, as that they
may not, by the daily instruction of the Law, advance to a purer knowledge
of the Divine will. Then, because we need not doctrine merely, but exhortation
also, the servant of God will derive this further advantage from the Law:
by frequently meditating upon it, he will be excited to obedience, and
confirmed in it, and so drawn away from the slippery paths of sin. In this
way must the saints press onward, since, however great the alacrity with
which, under the Spirit, they hasten toward righteousness, they are retarded
by the sluggishness of the flesh, and make less progress than they ought.
The Law acts like a whip to the flesh, urging it on as men do a lazy sluggish
ass. Even in the case of a spiritual man, inasmuch as he is still burdened
with the weight of the flesh, the Law is a constant stimulus, pricking
him forward when he would indulge in sloth. David had this use in view
when he pronounced this high eulogium on the Law, "The law of the Lord
is perfect, converting the soul: the testimony of the Lord is sure, making
wise the simple. The statutes of the Lord are right, rejoicing the heart:
the commandment of the Lord is pure, enlightening the eyes," (Ps. 19:7,
8). Again, "Thy word is a lamp unto my feet, and a light unto my path,"
(Ps. 119:105). The whole psalm abounds in passages to the same effect.
Such passages are not inconsistent with those of Paul, which show not the
utility of the law to the regenerate, but what it is able of itself to
bestow. The object of the Psalmist is to celebrate the advantages which
the Lord, by means of his law, bestows on those whom he inwardly inspires
with a love of obedience. And he adverts not to the mere precepts, but
also to the promise annexed to them, which alone makes that sweet which
in itself is bitter. For what is less attractive than the law, when, by
its demands and threatening, it overawes the soul, and fills it with terror?
David specially shows that in the law he saw the Mediator, without whom
it gives no pleasure or delight.
13. Some unskilful
persons, from not attending to this, boldly discard the whole law of Moses,
and do away with both its Tables, imagining it unchristian to adhere to
a doctrine which contains the ministration of death. Far from our thoughts
be this profane notion. Moses has admirably shown that the Law, which can
produce nothing but death in sinners, ought to have a better and more excellent
effect upon the righteous. When about to die, he thus addressed the people,
"Set your hearts unto all the words which I testify among you this day,
which ye shall command your children to observe to do, all the words of
this law. For it is not a vain thing for you; because it is your life,"
(Deut. 32:46, 47). If it cannot be denied that it contains a perfect pattern
of righteousness, then, unless we ought not to have any proper rule of
life, it must be impious to discard it. There are not various rules of
life, but one perpetual and inflexible rule; and, therefore, when David
describes the righteous as spending their whole lives in meditating on
the Law (Psalm 1:2), we must not confine to a single age, an employment
which is most appropriate to all ages, even to the end of the world. Nor
are we to be deterred or to shun its instructions, because the holiness
which it prescribes is stricter than we are able to render, so long as
we bear about the prison of the body. It does not now perform toward us
the part of a hard taskmaster, who will not be satisfied without full payment;
but, in the perfection to which it exhorts us, points out the goal at which,
during the whole course of our lives, it is not less our interest than
our duty to aim. It is well if we thus press onward. Our whole life is
a race, and after we have finished our course, the Lord will enable us
to reach that goal to which, at present, we can only aspire in wish.
14. Since, in
regard to believers, the law has the force of exhortation, not to bind
their consciences with a curse, but by urging them, from time to time,
to shake off sluggishness and chastise imperfection,--many, when they would
express this exemption from the curse, say, that in regard to believers
the Law (I still mean the Moral Law) is abrogated: not that the things
which it enjoins are no longer right to be observed, but only that it is
not to believers what it formerly was; in other words, that it does not,
by terrifying and confounding their consciences, condemn and destroy. It
is certainly true that Paul shows, in clear terms, that there is such an
abrogation of the Law. And that the same was preached by our Lord appears
from this, that he would not have refuted the opinion of his destroying
the Law, if it had not been prevalent among the Jews. Since such an opinion
could not have arisen at random without some pretext, there is reason to
presume that it originated in a false interpretation of his doctrine, in
the same way in which all errors generally arise from a perversion of the
truth. But lest we should stumble against the same stone, let us distinguish
accurately between what has been abrogated in the Law, and what still remains
in force. When the Lord declares, that he came not to destroy the Law,
but to fulfil (Mt. 5:17); that until heaven and earth pass away, not one
jot or little shall remain unfulfilled; he shows that his advent was not
to derogate, in any degree, from the observance of the Law. And justly,
since the very end of his coming was to remedy the transgression of the
Law. Therefore, the doctrine of the Law has not been infringed by Christ,
but remains, that, by teaching, admonishing, rebuking, and correcting,
it may fit and prepare us for every good work.
15. What Paul
says, as to the abrogation of the Law, evidently applies not to the Law
itself, but merely to its power of constraining the conscience. For the
Law not only teaches, but also imperiously demands. If obedience is not
yielded, nay, if it is omitted in any degree, it thunders forth its curse.
For this reason, the Apostle says, that "as many as are of the works of
the law are under the curse: for it is written, Cursed is every one that
continueth not in all things which are written in the book of the law to
do them," (Gal. 3:10; Deut. 27:26). Those he describes as under the works
of the Law, who do not place righteousness in that forgiveness of sins
by which we are freed from the rigour of the Law. He therefore shows, that
we must be freed from the fetters of the Law, if we would not perish miserably
under them. But what fetters? Those of rigid and austere exaction, which
remits not one iota of the demand, and leaves no transgression unpunished.
To redeem us from this curse, Christ was made a curse for us: for it is
written, Cursed is every one that hangeth on a tree (Deut. 21:23, compared
with Gal. 3:13, 4:4). In the following chapter, indeed, he says, that "Christ
was made under the law, in order that he might redeem those who are under
the law;" but the meaning is the same. For he immediately adds, "That we
might receive the adoption of sons." What does this mean? That we might
not be, all our lifetime, subject to bondage, having our consciences oppressed
with the fear of death. Meanwhile, it must ever remain an indubitable truth,
that the Law has lost none of its authority, but must always receive from
us the same respect and obedience.
16. The case
of ceremonies is different, these having been abrogated not in effect but
in use only. Though Christ by his advent put an end to their use, so far
is this from derogating from their sacredness, that it rather commends
and illustrates it. For as these ceremonies would have given nothing to
God's ancient people but empty show, if the power of Christ's death and
resurrection had not been prefigured by them,--so, if the use of them had
not ceased, it would, in the present day, be impossible to understand for
what purpose they were instituted. Accordingly, Paul, in order to prove
that the observance of them was not only superfluous, but pernicious also,
says that they "are a shadow of things to come; but the body is of Christ,"
(Col. 2:17). We see, therefore, that the truth is made clearer by their
abolition than if Christ, who has been openly manifested, were still figured
by them as at a distance, and as under a veil. By the death of Christ,
the veil of the temple was rent in vain, the living and express image of
heavenly things, which had begun to be dimly shadowed forth, being now
brought fully into view, as is described by the author of the Epistle to
the Hebrews (Heb. 10:1). To the same effect, our Saviour declares, that
"the law and the prophets were until John: since that time the kingdom
of God is preached, and every man presseth into it," (Luke 16:16); not
that the holy fathers were left without the preaching of the hope of salvation
and eternal life, but because they only saw at a distance, and under a
shadow, what we now behold in full light. Why it behaved the Church to
ascend higher than these elements, is explained by John the Baptist, when
he says, "The law was given by Moses, but grace and truth came by Jesus
Christ," (John 1:17). For though it is true that expiation was promised
in the ancient sacrifices, and the ark of the covenant was a sure pledge
of the paternal favour of God, the whole would have been delusory had it
not been founded on the grace of Christ, wherein true and eternal stability
is found. It must be held as a fixed point, that though legal rites ceased
to be observed, their end serves to show more clearly how great their utility
was before the advent of Christ, who, while he abolished the use, sealed
their force and effect by his death.
17. There is
a little more difficulty in the following passage of Paul: "You, being
dead in your sins and the uncircumcision of your flesh, has he quickened
together with him, having forgiven you all trespasses; blotting out the
handwriting of ordinances that was against us, which was contrary to us,
and took it out of the way, nailing it to his cross," &c. (Col. 2:13,
14). He seems to extend the abolition of the Law considerably farther,
as if we had nothing to do with its injunctions. Some err in interpreting
this simply of the Moral Law, as implying the abolition not of its injunctions,
but of its inexorable rigour. Others examining Paul's words more carefully,
see that they properly apply to the Ceremonial Law, and show that Paul
repeatedly uses the term ordinance in this sense. He thus writes
to the Ephesians: "He is our peace, who has made both one, and has broken
down the middle wall of partition between us; having abolished in his flesh
the enmity, even the law of commandments contained in ordinances; for to
make in himself of twain one new man," (Eph. 2:14). There can be no doubt
that he is there treating of ceremonies, as he speaks of "the middle wall
of partition" which separated Jews and Gentiles. I therefore hold that
the former view is erroneous; but, at the same time, it does not appear
to me that the latter comes fully up to the Apostle's meaning. For I cannot
admit that the two passages are perfectly parallel. As his object was to
assure the Ephesians that they were admitted to fellowship with the Jews,
he tells them that the obstacle which formerly stood in the way was removed.
This obstacle was in the ceremonies. For the rites of ablution and sacrifice,
by which the Jews were consecrated to the Lord, separated them from the
Gentiles. But who sees not that, in the Epistle to the Colossians, a sublimer
mystery is adverted to? No doubt, a question is raised there as to the
Mosaic observances, to which false apostles were endeavouring to bind the
Christian people. But as in the Epistle to the Galatians he takes a higher
view of this controversy, and in a manner traces it to its fountain, so
he does in this passage also. For if the only thing considered in rites
is the necessity of observing them, of what use was it to call it a handwriting
which was contrary to us? Besides, how could the bringing in of it be set
down as almost the whole sum of redemption? Wherefore, the very nature
of the case clearly shows that reference is here made to something more
internal. I cannot doubt that I have ascertained the genuine interpretation,
provided I am permitted to assume what Augustine has somewhere most truly
affirmed, nay, derived from the very words of the Apostle--viz. that in
the Jewish ceremonies there was more a confession than an expiation of
sins. For what more was done in sacrifice by those who substituted purifications
instead of themselves, than to confess that they were conscious of deserving
death? What did these purifications testify but that they themselves were
impure? By these means, therefore, the handwriting both of their guilt
and impurity was ever and anon renewed. But the attestation of these things
was not the removal of them. Wherefore, the Apostle says that Christ is
"the mediator of the new testament,--by means of death, for the redemption
of the transgressions that were under the first testament," (Heb. 9:15).
Justly, therefore, does the Apostle describe these handwritings as against
the worshipers, and contrary to them, since by means of them their impurity
and condemnation were openly sealed. There is nothing contrary to this
in the fact that they were partakers of the same grace with ourselves.
This they obtained through Christ, and not through the ceremonies which
the Apostle there contrasts with Christ, showing that by the continued
use of them the glory of Christ was obscured. We perceive how ceremonies,
considered in themselves, are elegantly and appositely termed handwritings,
and contrary to the salvation of man, in as much as they were a kind of
formal instruments which attested his liability. On the other hand, when
false apostles wished to bind them on the Christian Church, Paul, entering
more deeply into their signification, with good reason warned the Colossians
how seriously they would relapse if they allowed a yoke to be in that way
imposed upon them. By so doing, they, at the same time, deprived themselves
of all benefit from Christ, who, by his eternal sacrifice once offered,
had abolished those daily sacrifices, which were indeed powerful to attest
sin, but could do nothing to destroy it.
CHAPTER 8.
EXPOSITION OF THE MORAL LAW.
This chapter consists
of four parts. I. Some general observations necessary for the understanding
of the subject are made by way of preface, sec. 1-5. II. Three things always
to be attended to in ascertaining and expounding the meaning of the Moral
Law, sec. 6-12. III. Exposition of the Moral Law, or the Ten Commandments,
sec. 13-15. IV. The end for which the whole Law is intended--viz. to teach
not only elementary principles, but perfection, sec. 51, to the end of
the chapter.
Sections.
1. The Law was committed to writing,
in order that it might teach more fully and perfectly that knowledge, both
of God and of ourselves, which the law of nature teaches meagrely and obscurely.
Proof of this, from an enumeration of the principal parts of the Moral
Law; and also from the dictate of natural law, written on the hearts of
all, and, in a manner, effaced by sin.
2. Certain general maxims. 1. From
the knowledge of God, furnished by the Law, we learn that God is our Father
and Ruler. Righteousness is pleasing, iniquity is an abomination in his
sight. Hence, how weak soever we may be, our duty is to cultivate the one,
and shun the other.
3. From the knowledge of ourselves,
furnished by the Law, we learn to discern our own utter powerlessness,
we are ashamed; and seeing it is in vain to seek for righteousness in ourselves,
are induced to seek it elsewhere.
4. Hence, God has annexed promises
and threatening to his promises. These not limited to the present life,
but embrace things heavenly and eternal. They, moreover, attest the spotless
purity of God, his love of righteousness, and also his kindness towards
us.
5. The Law shows, moreover, that
there is nothing more acceptable to God than obedience. Hence, all superstitious
and hypocritical modes of worship are condemned. A remedy against superstitious
worship and human presumption.
6. The second part of the chapter,
containing three observations or rules. First rule, Our life must be formed
by the Law, not only to external honesty, but to inward and spiritual righteousness.
In this respect, the Law of God differs from civil laws, he being a spiritual
Lawgiver, man not. This rule of great extent, and not sufficiently attended
to.
7. This first rule confirmed by the
authority of Christ, and vindicated from the false dogma of Sophists, who
say that Christ is only another Moses.
8. Second observation or rule to
be carefully attended to--viz. that the end of the command must be inquired
into, until it is ascertained what the Lawgiver approves or disapproves.
Example. Where the Law approves, its opposite is condemned, and vice
versa.
9. Full explanation of this latter
point. Example.
10. The Law states what is most impious
in each transgression, in order to show how heinous the transgression is.
Example.
11. Third observation or rule regards
the division of the Law into Two Tables: the former comprehending our duty
to God; the latter, our duty to our neighbour. The connection between these
necessary and inseparable. Their invariable order. Sum of the Law.
12. Division of the Law into Ten
Commandments. Various distinctions made with regard to them, but the best
distinction that which divides them into Two Tables. Four commandments
belong to the First, and six to the Second Table.
13. The third part of the chapter,
containing an exposition of the Decalogue. The preface vindicates the authority
of the Law. This it does in three ways. First, by a declaration of its
majesty.
14. The preface to the Law vindicates
its authority. Secondly, by calling to mind God's paternal kindness.
15. Thirdly, by calling to mind the
deliverance out of the land of Egypt. Why God distinguishes himself by
certain epithets. Why mention is made of the deliverance from Egypt. In
what way, and how far, the remembrance of this deliverance should still
affect us.
16. Exposition of the First Commandment.
Its end. What it is to have God, and to have strange gods. Adoration due
to God, trust, invocation, thanksgiving, and also true religion, required
by the Commandment. Superstition, Polytheism, and Atheism, forbidden. What
meant by the words, "before me."
17. Exposition of the Second Commandment.
The end and sum of it. Two parts. Short enumeration of forbidden shapes.
18. Why a threatening is added. Four
titles applied to God, to make a deeper impression. He is called Mighty,
Jealous, an Avenger, Merciful. Why said to be jealous. Reason drawn from
analogy.
19. Exposition of the threatening
which is added. First, as to visiting the iniquity of the fathers upon
the children. A misinterpretation on this head refuted, and the genuine
meaning of the threatening explained.
20. Whether this visiting of the
sins of parents inconsistent with the divine justice. Apparently conflicting
passages reconciled.
21. Exposition of the latter part--viz.
the showing mercy to thousands. The use of this promise. Consideration
of an exception of frequent occurrence. The extent of this blessing.
22. Exposition of the Third Commandment.
The end and sum of it. Three parts. These considered. What it is to use
the name of God in vain. Swearing. Distinction between this commandment
and the Ninth.
23. An oath defined. It is a species
of divine worship. This explained.
24. Many modes in which this commandment
is violated. 1. By taking God to witness what we know is false. The insult
thus offered.
25. Modes of violation continued.
2. Taking God to witness in trivial matters. Contempt thus shown. When
and how an oath should be used. 3. Substituting the servants of God instead
of himself when taking an oath.
26. The Anabaptists, who condemn
all oaths, refuted. 1. By the authority of Christ, who cannot be opposed
in anything to the Father. A passage perverted by the Anabaptists explained.
The design of our Saviour in the passage. What meant by his there prohibiting
oaths.
27. The lawfulness of oaths confirmed
by Christ and the apostles. Some approve of public, but not of private
oaths. The lawfulness of the latter proved both by reason and example.
Instances from Scripture.
28. Exposition of the Fourth Commandment.
Its end. Three purposes.
29. Explanation of the first purpose--viz.
a shadowing forth of spiritual rest. This the primary object of the precept.
God is therein set forth as our sanctifier; and hence we must abstain from
work, that the work of God in us may not be hindered.
30. The number seven denoting perfection
in Scripture, this commandment may, in that respect, denote the perpetuity
of the Sabbath, and its completion at the last day.
31. Taking a simpler view of the
commandment, the number is of no consequence, provided we maintain the
doctrine of a perpetual rest from all our works, and, at the same time,
avoid a superstitious observance of days. The ceremonial part of the commandment
abolished by the advent of Christ.
32. The second and third purposes
of the Commandment explained. These twofold and perpetual. This confirmed.
Of religious assemblies.
33. Of the observance of the Lord's
day, in answer to those who complain that the Christian people are thus
trained to Judaism. Objection.
34. Ground of this institution. There
is no kind of superstitious necessity. The sum of the Commandment.
35. The Fifth Commandment (the first
of the Second Table), expounded. Its end and substance. How far honour
due to parents. To whom the term
father applies.
36. It makes no difference whether
those to whom this honour is required are worthy or unworthy. The honour
is claimed especially for parents. It consists of three parts. 1. Reverence.
37. Honour due to parents continued.
2. Obedience. 3. Gratitude. Why a promise added. In what sense it is to
be taken. The present life a testimony of divine blessing. The reservation
considered and explained.
38. Conversely a curse denounced
on disobedient children. How far obedience due to parents, and those in
the place of parents.
39. Sixth Commandment expounded.
Its end and substance. God, as a spiritual Lawgiver, forbids the murder
of the heart, and requires a sincere desire to preserve the life of our
neighbour.
40. A twofold ground for this Commandment.
1. Man is the image of God. 2. He is our flesh.
41. Exposition of the Seventh Command.
The end and substance of it. Remedy against fornication.
42. Continence an excellent gift,
when under the control of God only. Altogether denied to some; granted
only for a time to others. Argument in favour of celibacy refuted.
43. Each individual may refrain from
marriage so long as he is fit to observe celibacy. True celibacy, and the
proper use of it. Any man not gifted with continence wars with God and
with nature, as constituted by him, in remaining unmarried. Chastity defined.
44. Precautions to be observed in
married life. Everything repugnant to chastity here condemned.
45. Exposition of the Eighth Commandment.
Its end and substance. Four kinds of theft. The bad acts condemned by this
Commandment. Other peculiar kinds of theft.
46. Proper observance of this Commandment.
Four heads. Application. 1. To the people and the magistrate. 2. To the
pastors of the Church and their flocks. 3. To parents and children. 4.
To the old and the young. 5. To servants and masters. 6. To individuals.
47. Exposition of the ninth Commandment.
Its end and substance. The essence of the Commandment--detestation of falsehood,
and the pursuit of truth. Two kinds of falsehood. Public and private testimony.
The equity of this Commandment.
48. How numerous the violations of
this Commandment. 1. By detraction. 2. By evil speaking--a thing contrary
to the offices of Christian charity. 3. By scurrility or irony. 4. By prying
curiosity, and proneness to harsh judgments.
49. Exposition of the Tenth Commandment.
Its end and substance. What meant by the term Covetousness. Distinction
between counsel and the covetousness here condemned.
50. Why God requires so much purity.
Objection. Answer. Charity toward our neighbour here principally commended.
Why house, wife, man-servant, maid-servant, ox, and ass, &c., are mentioned.
Improper division of this Commandment into two.
51. The last part of the chapter.
The end of the Law. Proof. A summary of the Ten Commandments. The Law delivers
not merely rudiments and first principles, but a perfect standard of righteousness,
modelled on the divine purity.
52. Why, in the Gospels and Epistles,
the latter table only mentioned, and not the first. The same thing occurs
in the Prophets.
53. An objection to what is said
in the former section removed.
54. A conduct duly regulated by the
divine Law, characterised by charity toward our neighbour. This subverted
by those who give the first place to self-love. Refutation of their opinion.
55. Who our neighbour. Double error
of the Schoolmen on this point.
56. This error consists, I. In converting
precepts into counsels to be observed by monks.
57. Refutation of this error from
Scripture and the ancient Theologians. Sophistical objection obviated.
58. Error of the Schoolmen consists,
II. In calling hidden impiety and covetousness venial sins. Refutation
drawn, 1. From a consideration of the whole Decalogue. 2. The testimony
of an Apostle. 3. The authority of Christ. 4. The nature and majesty of
God. 5. The sentence pronounced against sin. Conclusion.
59. Refutation drawn, 1. From a consideration
of the whole Decalogue. 2. The testimony of an Apostle. 3. The authority
of Christ. 4. The nature and majesty of God. 5. The sentence pronounced
against sin. Conclusion.
1. I BELIEVE it will not be out of
place here to introduce the Ten Commandments of the Law, and give a brief
exposition of them. In this way it will be made more clear, that the worship
which God originally prescribed is still in force (a point to which I have
already adverted); and then a second point will be confirmed--viz. that
the Jews not only learned from the law wherein true piety consisted, but
from feeling their inability to observe it were overawed by the fear of
judgments and so drawn, even against their will, towards the Mediator.
In giving a summary of what constitutes the true knowledge of God,192
we showed that we cannot form any just conception of the character of God,
without feeling overawed by his majesty, and bound to do him service. In
regard to the knowledge of ourselves, we showed that it principally consists
in renouncing all idea of our own strength, and divesting ourselves of
all confidence in our own righteousness, while, on the other hand, under
a full consciousness of our wants, we learn true humility and self-abasement.
Both of these the Lord accomplishes by his Law, first, when, in assertion
of the right which he has to our obedience, he calls us to reverence his
majesty, and prescribes the conduct by which this reverence is manifested;
and, secondly, when, by promulgating the rule of his justice (a rule, to
the rectitude of which our nature, from being depraved and perverted, is
continually opposed, and to the perfection of which our ability, from its
infirmity and nervelessness for good, is far from being able to attain),
he charges us both with impotence and unrighteousness. Moreover, the very
things contained in the two tables are, in a manner, dictated to us by
that internal law, which, as has been already said, is in a manner written
and stamped on every heart. For conscience, instead of allowing us to stifle
our perceptions, and sleep on without interruption, acts as an inward witness
and monitor, reminds us of what we owe to God, points out the distinction
between good and evil, and thereby convicts us of departure from duty.
But man, being immured in the darkness of error, is scarcely able, by means
of that natural law, to form any tolerable idea of the worship which is
acceptable to God. At all events, he is very far from forming any correct
knowledge of it. In addition to this, he is so swollen with arrogance and
ambition, and so blinded with self-love, that he is unable to survey, and,
as it were, descend into himself, that he may so learn to humble and abase
himself, and confess his misery. Therefore, as a necessary remedy, both
for our dullness and our contumacy, the Lord has given us his written Law,
which, by its sure attestations, removes the obscurity of the law of nature,
and also, by shaking off our lethargy, makes a more lively and permanent
impression on our minds.
2. It is now
easy to understand the doctrine of the law--viz. that God, as our Creator,
is entitled to be regarded by us as a Father and Master, and should, accordingly,
receive from us fear, love, reverence, and glory; nay, that we are not
our own, to follow whatever course passion dictates, but are bound to obey
him implicitly, and to acquiesce entirely in his good pleasure. Again,
the Law teaches, that justice and rectitude are a delight, injustice an
abomination to him, and, therefore, as we would not with impious ingratitude
revolt from our Maker, our whole life must be spent in the cultivation
of righteousness. For if we manifest becoming reverence only when we prefer
his will to our own, it follows, that the only legitimate service to him
is the practice of justice, purity, and holiness. Nor can we plead as an
excuse, that we want the power, and, like debtors, whose means are exhausted,
are unable to pay. We cannot be permitted to measure the glory of God by
our ability; whatever we may be, he ever remains like himself, the friend
of righteousness, the enemy of unrighteousness, and whatever his demands
from us may be, as he can only require what is right, we are necessarily
under a natural obligation to obey. Our inability to do so is our own fault.
If lust, in which sin has its dominion, so enthrals us, that we are not
free to obey our Father, there is no ground for pleading necessity as a
defence, since this evil necessity is within, and must be imputed to ourselves.
3. When, under
the guidance of the Law, we have advanced thus far, we must, under the
same guidance, proceed to descend into ourselves. In this way, we at length
arrive at two results: First, contrasting our conduct with the righteousness
of the Law, we see how very far it is from being in accordance with the
will of God, and, therefore, how unworthy we are of holding our place among
his creatures, far less of being accounted his sons; and, secondly, taking
a survey of our powers, we see that they are not only unequal to fulfil
the Law, but are altogether null. The necessary consequence must be, to
produce distrust of our own ability, and also anxiety and trepidation of
mind. Conscience cannot feel the burden of its guilt, without forthwith
turning to the judgment of God, while the view of this judgment cannot
fail to excite a dread of death. In like manner, the proofs of our utter
powerlessness must instantly beget despair of our own strength. Both feelings
are productive of humility and abasement, and hence the sinner, terrified
at the prospect of eternal death (which he sees justly impending over him
for his iniquities), turns to the mercy of God as the only haven of safety.
Feeling his utter inability to pay what he owes to the Law, and thus despairing
of himself, he rethinks him of applying and looking to some other quarter
for help.
4. But the Lord
does not count it enough to inspire a reverence for his justice. To imbue
our hearts with love to himself, and, at the same time, with hatred to
iniquity, he has added promises and threatening. The eye of our mind being
too dim to be attracted by the mere beauty of goodness, our most merciful
Father has been pleased, in his great indulgence, to allure us to love
and long after it by the hope of reward. He accordingly declares that rewards
for virtue are treasured up with him, that none who yield obedience to
his commands will labour in vain. On the other hand, he proclaims not only
that iniquity is hateful in his sight, but that it will not escape with
impunity, because he will be the avenger of his insulted majesty. That
he may encourage us in every way, he promises present blessings, as well
as eternal felicity, to the obedience of those who shall have kept his
commands, while he threatens transgressors with present suffering, as well
as the punishment of eternal death. The promise, "Ye shall therefore keep
my statutes, and my judgments; which if a man do, he shall live in them,"
(Lev. 18:5), and corresponding to this the threatening, "The souls that
sinneth, it shall die," (Ezek. 18:4, 20); doubtless point to a future life
and death, both without end. But though in every passage where the favour
or anger of God is mentioned, the former comprehends eternity of life and
the latter eternal destruction, the Law, at the same time, enumerates a
long catalogue of present blessings and curses (Lev. 26:4; Deut. 28:1).
The threatening attest the spotless purity of God, which cannot bear iniquity,
while the promises attest at once his infinite love of righteousness (which
he cannot leave unrewarded), and his wondrous kindness. Being bound to
do him homage with all that we have, he is perfectly entitled to demand
everything which he requires of us as a debt; and as a debt, the payment
is unworthy of reward. He therefore foregoes his right, when he holds forth
reward for services which are not offered spontaneously, as if they were
not due. The amount of these services, in themselves, has been partly described
and will appear more clearly in its own place. For the present, it is enough
to remember that the promises of the Law are no mean commendation of righteousness
as they show how much God is pleased with the observance of them, while
the threatening denounced are intended to produce a greater abhorrence
of unrighteousness, lest the sinner should indulge in the blandishments
of vice, and forget the judgment which the divine Lawgiver has prepared
for him.
5. The Lord,
in delivering a perfect rule of righteousness, has reduced it in all its
parts to his mere will, and in this way has shown that there is nothing
more acceptable to him than obedience. There is the more necessity for
attending to this, because the human mind, in its wantonness, is ever and
anon inventing different modes of worship as a means of gaining his favour.
This irreligious affectation of religion being innate in the human mind,
has betrayed itself in every age, and is still doing so, men always longing
to devise some method of procuring righteousness without any sanction from
the Word of God.193 Hence in those observances which are generally
regarded as good works, the precepts of the Law occupy a narrow space,
almost the whole being usurped by this endless host of human inventions.
But was not this the very license which Moses meant to curb, when, after
the promulgation of the Law, he thus addressed the people: "Observe and
hear all these words which I command thee, that it may go well with thee,
and with thy children after thee for ever, when thou does that which is
good and right in the sight of the Lord thy God." "What thing soever I
command you, observe to do it: thou shalt not add thereto, nor diminish
from it," (Deut 12:28-32). Previously, after asking "what nation is there
so great, that has statutes and judgments so righteous as all this law,
which I set before you this day?" he had added, "Only take heed to thyself,
and keep thy soul diligently, lest thou forget the things which thine eyes
have seen, and lest they depart from thy heart all the days of thy life,"
(Deut. 4:8, 9). God foreseeing that the Israelites would not rest, but
after receiving the Law, would, unless sternly prohibited give birth to
new kinds of righteousness, declares that the Law comprehended a perfect
righteousness. This ought to have been a most powerful restraint, and yet
they desisted not from the presumptuous course so strongly prohibited.
How do we act? We are certainly under the same obligation as they were;
for there cannot be a doubt that the claim of absolute perfection which
God made for his Law is perpetually in force. Not contented with it, however,
we labour prodigiously in feigning and coining an endless variety of good
works, one after another. The best cure for this vice would be a constant
and deep-seated conviction that the Law was given from heaven to teach
us a perfect righteousness; that the only righteousness so taught is that
which the divine will expressly enjoins; and that it is, therefore, vain
to attempt, by new forms of worship, to gain the favour of God, whose true
worship consists in obedience alone; or rather, that to go a wandering
after good works which are not prescribed by the Law of God, is an intolerable
violation of true and divine righteousness. Most truly does Augustine say
in one place, that the obedience which is rendered to God is the parent
and guardian; in another, that it is the source of all the virtues.194
6. After we shall
have expounded the Divine Law, what has been previously said of its office
and use will be understood more easily, and with greater benefit. But before
we proceed to the consideration of each separate commandment, it will be
proper to take a general survey of the whole. At the outset, it was proved
that in the Law human life is instructed not merely in outward decency
but in inward spiritual righteousness. Though none can deny this, yet very
few duly attend to it, because they do not consider the Lawgiver, by whose
character that of the Law must also be determined. Should a king issue
an edict prohibiting murder, adultery, and theft, the penalty, I admit,
will not be incurred by the man who has only felt a longing in his mind
after these vices, but has not actually committed them. The reason is,
that a human lawgiver does not extend his care beyond outward order, and,
therefore, his injunctions are not violated without outward acts. But God,
whose eye nothing escapes, and who regards not the outward appearance so
much as purity of heart, under the prohibition of murder, adultery, and
thefts includes wrath, hatred, lust, covetousness, and all other things
of a similar nature. Being a spiritual Lawgiver, he speaks to the soul
not less than the body. The murder which the soul commits is wrath and
hatred; the theft, covetousness and avarice; and the adultery, lust. It
may be alleged that human laws have respect to intentions and wishes, and
not fortuitous events. I admit this but then these must manifest themselves
externally. They consider the
animus with which the act was done,
but do not scrutinise the secret thoughts. Accordingly, their demand is
satisfied when the hand merely refrains from transgression. On the contrary,
the law of heaven being enacted for our minds, the first thing necessary
to a due observance of the Law is to put them under restraint. But the
generality of men, even while they are most anxious to conceal their disregard
of the Law, only frame their hands and feet and other parts of their body
to some kind of observance, but in the meanwhile keep the heart utterly
estranged from everything like obedience. They think it enough to have
carefully concealed from man what they are doing in the sight of God. Hearing
the commandments, "Thou shalt not kill," "Thou shalt not commit adultery,"
"Thou shalt not steal," they do not unsheathe their sword for slaughter,
nor defile their bodies with harlots, nor put forth their hands to other
men's goods. So far well; but with their whole soul they breathe out slaughter,
boil with lust, cast a greedy eye at their neighbour's property, and in
wish devour it. Here the principal thing which the Law requires is wanting.
Whence then, this gross stupidity, but just because they lose sight of
the Lawgiver, and form an idea of righteousness in accordance with their
own disposition? Against this Paul strenuously protests, when he declares
that the "law is spiritual" (Rom. 7:14); intimating that it not
only demands the homage of the soul, and mind, and will, but requires an
angelic purity, which, purified from all filthiness of the flesh, savours
only of the Spirit.
7. In saying
that this is the meaning of the Law, we are not introducing a new interpretation
of our own; we are following Christ, the best interpreter of the Law (Mt.
5:22, 28, 44). The Pharisees having instilled into the people the erroneous
idea that the Law was fulfilled by every one who did not in external act
do anything against the Law, he pronounces this a most dangerous delusion,
and declares that an immodest look is adultery, and that hatred of a brother
is murder. "Whosoever is angry with his brother without a cause, shall
be in danger of the judgment;" whosoever by whispering or murmuring gives
indication of being offended, "shall be in danger of the council;" whosoever
by reproaches and evil-speaking gives way to open anger, "shall be in danger
of hell-fire." Those who have not perceived this, have pretended that Christ
was only a second Moses, the giver of an evangelical, to supply the deficiency
of the Mosaic Law. Hence the common axiom as to the perfection of the Evangelical
Law, and its great superiority to that of Moses. This idea is in many ways
most pernicious. For it will appear from Moses himself, when we come to
give a summary of his precepts, that great indignity is thus done to the
Divine Law. It certainly insinuates, that the holiness of the fathers under
the Law was little else than hypocrisy, and leads us away from that one
unvarying rule of righteousness. It is very easy, however, to confute this
error, which proceeds on the supposition that Christ added to the Law,
whereas he only restored it to its integrity by maintaining and purifying
it when obscured by the falsehood, and defiled by the leaven of the Pharisees.
8. The next observation
we would make is, that there is always more in the requirements and prohibitions
of the Law than is expressed in words. This, however, must be understood
so as not to convert it into a kind of Lesbian code;195 and
thus, by licentiously wresting the Scriptures, make them assume any meaning
that we please. By taking this excessive liberty with Scripture, its authority
is lowered with some, and all hope of understanding it abandoned by others.
We must, therefore, if possible, discover some path which may conduct us
with direct and firm step to the will of God. We must consider, I say,
how far interpretation can be permitted to go beyond the literal meaning
of the words, still making it apparent that no appending of human glosses
is added to the Divine Law, but that the pure and genuine meaning of the
Lawgiver is faithfully exhibited. It is true that, in almost all the commandments,
there are elliptical expressions, and that, therefore, any man would make
himself ridiculous by attempting to restrict the spirit of the Law to the
strict letter of the words. It is plain that a sober interpretation of
the Law must go beyond these, but how far is doubtful, unless some rule
be adopted. The best rule, in my opinion, would be, to be guided by the
principle of the commandment--viz. to consider in the case of each what
the purpose is for which it was given. For example, every commandment either
requires or prohibits; and the nature of each is instantly discerned when
we look to the principle of the commandment as its end. Thus, the end of
the Fifth Commandment is to render honour to those on whom God bestows
it. The sum of the commandment, therefore, is, that it is right in itself,
and pleasing to God, to honour those on whom he has conferred some distinction;
that to despise and rebel against such persons is offensive to Him. The
principle of the First Commandment is, that God only is to be worshipped.
The sum of the commandment, therefore is that true piety, in other words,
the worship of the Deity, is acceptable, and impiety is an abomination,
to him. So in each of the commandments we must first look to the matter
of which it treats, and then consider its end, until we discover what it
properly is that the Lawgiver declares to be pleasing or displeasing to
him. Only, we must reason from the precept to its contrary in this way:
If this pleases God, its opposite displeases; if that displeases, its opposite
pleases: if God commands this, he forbids the opposite; if he forbids that,
he commands the opposite.
9. What is now
touched on somewhat obscurely will become perfectly clear as we proceed
and get accustomed to the exposition of the Commandments. It is sufficient
thus to have adverted to the subject; but perhaps our concluding statement
will require to be briefly confirmed, as it might otherwise not be understood,
or, though understood mighty perhaps, at the outset appear unsound. There
is no need of proving, that when good is ordered the evil which is opposed
to it is forbidden. This every one admits. It will also be admitted, without
much difficulty, that when evil is forbidden, its opposite is enjoined.
Indeed, it is a common saying, that censure of vice is commendation of
virtue. We, however, demand somewhat more than is commonly understood by
these expressions. When the particular virtue opposed to a particular vice
is spoken of, all that is usually meant is abstinence from that vice. We
maintain that it goes farther, and means opposite duties and positive acts.
Hence the commandment, "Thou shalt not kill," the generality of men will
merely consider as an injunction to abstain from all injury and all wish
to inflict injury. I hold that it moreover means, that we are to aid our
neighbour's life by every means in our power. And not to assert without
giving my reasons I prove it thus: God forbids us to injure or hurt a brother,
because he would have his life to be dear and precious to us; and, therefore,
when he so forbids, he, at the same time, demands all the offices of charity
which can contribute to his preservation.
10. But why did
God thus deliver his commandments, as it were, by halves, using elliptical
expressions with a larger meaning than that actually expressed? Other reasons
are given, but the following seems to me the best:--As the flesh is always
on the alert to extenuate the heinousness of sin (unless it is made, as
it were, perceptible to the touch), and to cover it with specious pretexts,
the Lord sets forth, by way of example, whatever is foulest and most iniquitous
in each species of transgression, that the delivery of it might produce
a shudder in the hearer, and impress his mind with a deeper abhorrence
of sin. In forming an estimate of sins, we are often imposed upon by imagining
that the more hidden the less heinous they are. This delusion the Lord
dispels by accustoming us to refer the whole multitude of sins to particular
heads, which admirably show how great a degree of heinousness there is
in each. For example, wrath and hatred do not seem so very bad when they
are designated by their own names; but when they are prohibited under the
name of murder, we understand better how abominable they are in the sight
of God, who puts them in the same class with that horrid crime. Influenced
by his judgment, we accustom ourselves to judge more accurately of the
heinousness of offences which previously seemed trivial.
11. It will now
be proper to consider what is meant by the division of the divine Law into
Two Tables. It will be judged by all men of sense from the formal manner
in which these are sometimes mentioned, that it has not been done at random,
or without reason. Indeed, the reason is so obvious as not to allow us
to remain in doubt with regard to it. God thus divided his Law into two
parts, containing a complete rule of righteousness, that he might assign
the first place to the duties of religion which relate especially to His
worship, and the second to the duties of charity which have respect to
man. The first foundation of righteousness undoubtedly is the worship of
God. When it is subverted, all the other parts of righteousness, like a
building rent asunder, and in ruins, are racked and scattered. What kind
of righteousness do you call it, not to commit theft and rapine, if you,
in the meantime, with impious sacrilege, rob God of his glory? or not to
defile your body with fornication, if you profane his holy name with blasphemy?
or not to take away the life of man, if you strive to cut off and destroy
the remembrance of God? It is vain, therefore, to talk of righteousness
apart from religion. Such righteousness has no more beauty than the trunk
of a body deprived of its head.196 Nor is religion the principal
part merely: it is the very soul by which
the whole lives and breathes.
Without the fear of God, men do not even observe justice and charity among
themselves. We say, then, that the worship of God is the beginning and
foundation of righteousness; and that wherever it is wanting, any degree
of equity, or continence, or temperance, existing among men themselves,
is empty and frivolous in the sight of God. We call it the source and soul
of righteousness, in as much as men learn to live together temperately,
and without injury, when they revere God as the judge of right and wrong.
In the First Table, accordingly, he teaches us how to cultivate piety,
and the proper duties of religion in which his worship consists; in the
second, he shows how, in the fear of his name, we are to conduct ourselves
towards our fellow-men. Hence, as related by the Evangelists (Mt. 22:37;
Luke 10:27), our Saviour summed up the whole Law in two heads--viz. to
love the Lord with all our heart, with all our soul, and with all our strength,
and our neighbour as ourselves. You see how, of the two parts under which
he comprehends the whole Law, he devotes the one to God, and assigns the
other to mankind.
12. But although
the whole Law is contained in two heads, yet, in order to remove every
pretext for excuse, the Lord has been pleased to deliver more fully and
explicitly in Ten Commandments, every thing relating to his own honour,
fear, and love, as well as every thing relating to the charity which, for
his sake, he enjoins us to have towards our fellowmen. Nor is it an unprofitable
study to consider the division of the commandments, provided we remember
that it is one of those matters in which every man should have full freedom
of judgment, and on account of which, difference of opinion should not
lead to contention. We are, indeed, under the necessity of making this
observation, lest the division which we are to adopt should excite the
surprise or derision of the reader, as novel or of recent invention.
There is no room
for controversy as to the fact, that the Law is divided into ten heads
since this is repeatedly sanctioned by divine authority. The question,
therefore, is not as to the number of the parts, but the method of dividing
them. Those who adopt a division which gives three commandments to the
First Table, and throws the remaining seven into the Second Table, expunge
the commandment concerning images from the list, or at least conceal it
under the first, though there cannot be a doubt that it was distinctly
set down by the Lord as a separate commandment; whereas the tenth, which
prohibits the coveting of what belongs to our neighbour, they absurdly
break down into two. Moreover, it will soon appear, that this method of
dividing was unknown in a purer age. Others count four commandments in
the First Table as we do, but for the first set down the introductory promise,
without adding the precept. But because I must hold, unless I am convinced
by clear evidence to the contrary, that the "ten words" mentioned by Moses
are Ten Commandments and because I see that number arranged in most admirable
order, I must, while I leave them to hold their own opinion, follow what
appears to me better established--viz. that what they make to be the first
commandment is of the nature of a preface to the whole Law, that thereafter
follow four commandments in the First Table, and six in the Second, in
the order in which they will here be reviewed. This division Origin adopts
without discussion, as if it had been every where received in his day.197
It is also adopted by Augustine, in his book addressed to Boniface, where,
in enumerating the commandments, he follows this order, Let one God be
religiously obeyed, let no idol be worshipped, let the name of God be not
used in vain; while previously he had made separate mention of the typical
commandment of the Sabbath. Elsewhere, indeed, he expresses approbation
of the first division, but on too slight grounds, because, by the number
three (making the First Table consist of three commandments), the mystery
of the Trinity would be better manifested. Even here, however, he does
not disguise his opinion, that in other respects, our division is more
to his mind. Besides these, we are supported by the author of an unfinished
work on Matthew.198 Josephus, no doubt with the general consent
of his age, assigns five commandments to each table. This, while repugnant
to reason, inasmuch as it confounds the distinction between piety and charity,
is also refuted by the authority of our Saviour, who in Matthew places
the command to honour parents in the list of those belonging to the Second
Table (Mt. 19:19). Let us now hear God speaking in his own words.
First Commandment.
I AM THE LORD THY GOD, WHICH BROUGHT
THEE OUT OF THE LAND OF EGYPT, OUT OF THE HOUSE OF BONDAGE. THOU SHALT
HAVE NO OTHER GODS BEFORE ME.
13. Whether you
take the former sentence as a part of the commandment, or read it separately
is to me a matter of indifference, provided you grant that it is a kind
of preface to the whole Law. In enacting laws, the first thing to be guarded
against is their being forthwith abrogated by contempt. The Lord, therefore,
takes care, in the first place, that this shall not happen to the Law about
to be delivered, by introducing it with a triple sanction. He claims to
himself power and authority to command, that he may impress the chosen
people with the necessity of obedience; he holds forth a promise of favour,
as a means of alluring them to the study of holiness; and he reminds them
of his kindness, that he may convict them of ingratitude, if they fail
to make a suitable return. By the name, Lord, are denoted power and lawful
dominion. If all things are from him, and by him consist, they ought in
justice to bear reference to him, as Paul says (Rom. 11:36). This name,
therefore, is in itself sufficient to bring us under the authority of the
divine majesty: for it were monstrous for us to wish to withdraw from the
dominion of him, out of whom we cannot even exist.
14. After showing
that he has a right to command, and to be obeyed, he next, in order not
to seem to drag men by mere necessity, but to allure them, graciously declares,
that he is the God of the Church. For the mode of expression implies, that
there is a mutual relation included in the promise, "I will be their God,
and they shall be my people," (Jer. 31:33). Hence Christ infers the immortality
of Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, from the fact that God had declared himself
to be their God (Mt. 22:32). It is, therefore, the same as if he had said,
I have chosen you to myself, as a people to whom I shall not only do good
in the present life, but also bestow felicity in the life to come. The
end contemplated in this is adverted to in the Law, in various passages.
For when the Lord condescends in mercy to honour us so far as to admit
us to partnership with his chosen people, he chooses us, as Moses says,
"to be a holy people," "a peculiar people unto himself," to "keep all his
commandments," (Deut. 7:6; 14:2; 26:18). Hence the exhortation, "Ye shall
be holy; for I the Lord your God am holy," (Lev. 19:2). These two considerations
form the ground of the remonstrance, "A son honoureth his father, and a
servant his master; if then I be a father, where is mine honour? and if
I be a master, where is my fear? saith the Lord of hosts," (Mal. 1:6).
15. Next follows
a commemoration of his kindness, which ought to produce upon us an impression
strong in proportion to the detestation in which ingratitude is held even
among men. It is true, indeed, he was reminding Israel of a deliverance
then recent, but one which, on account of its wondrous magnitude, was to
be for ever memorable to the remotest posterity. Moreover, it is most appropriate
to the matter in hand.199 For the Lord intimates that they were
delivered from miserable bondage, that they might learn to yield prompt
submission and obedience to him as the author of their freedom. In like
manners to keep us to his true worship, he often describes himself by certain
epithets which distinguish his sacred Deity from all idols and fictitious
gods. For, as I formerly observed, such is our proneness to vanity and
presumption, that as soon as God is named, our minds, unable to guard against
error, immediately fly off to some empty delusion. In applying a remedy
to this disease, God distinguishes his divinity by certain titles, and
thus confines us, as it were, within distinct boundaries, that we may not
wander hither and thither, and feign some new deity for ourselves, abandoning
the living God, and setting up an idol. For this reason, whenever the Prophets
would bring him properly before us, they invest, and, as it were, surround
him with those characters under which he had manifested himself to the
people of Israel. When he is called the God of Abraham, or the God of Israel,
when he is stationed in the temple of Jerusalem, between the Cherubim,
these, and similar modes of expression,200 do not confine him
to one place or one people, but are used merely for the purpose of fixing
our thoughts on that God who so manifested himself in the covenant which
he made with Israel, as to make it unlawful on any account to deviate from
the strict view there given of his character. Let it be understood, then,
that mention is made of deliverance, in order to make the Jews submit with
greater readiness to that God who justly claims them as his own. We again,
instead of supposing that the matter has no reference to us, should reflect
that the bondage of Israel in Egypt was a type of that spiritual bondage,
in the fetters of which we are all bound, until the heavenly avenger delivers
us by the power of his own arm, and transports us into his free kingdom.
Therefore, as in old times, when he would gather together the scattered
Israelites to the worship of his name, he rescued them from the intolerable
tyranny of Pharaoh, so all who profess him now are delivered from the fatal
tyranny of the devil, of which that of Egypt was only a type. There is
no man, therefore, whose mind ought not to be aroused to give heed to the
Law, which, as he is told, proceeded from the supreme King, from him who,
as he gave all their being, justly destines and directs them to himself
as their proper end. There is no man, I say, who should not hasten to embrace
the Lawgiver, whose commands, he knows, he has been specially appointed
to obey, from whose kindness he anticipates an abundance of all good, and
even a blessed immortality, and to whose wondrous power and mercy he is
indebted for deliverance from the jaws of death.201
16. The authority
of the Law being founded and established, God delivers his First Commandment--
THOU SHALT HAVE NO OTHER GODS BEFORE ME.
The purport of
this commandment is, that the Lord will have himself alone to be exalted
in his people, and claims the entire possession of them as his own. That
it may be so, he orders us to abstain from ungodliness and superstition
of every kind, by which the glory of his divinity is diminished or obscured;
and, for the same reason, he requires us to worship and adore him with
truly pious zeal. The simple terms used obviously amount to this. For seeing
we cannot have God without embracing everything which belongs to him, the
prohibition against having strange gods means, that nothing which belongs
to him is to be transferred to any other. The duties which we owe to God
are innumerable, but they seem to admit of being not improperly reduced
to four heads: Adoration, with its accessory spiritual submission of conscience,
Trust, Invocation, Thanksgiving.202 By Adoration, I mean the
veneration and worship which we render to him when we do homage to his
majesty; and hence I make
part of it to consist in bringing our consciences
into subjection to his Law.203 Trust, is secure resting in him
under a recognition of his perfections, when, ascribing to him all power,
wisdom, justice, goodness, and truth, we consider ourselves happy in having
been brought into intercourse with him. Invocation, may be defined the
retaking of ourselves to his promised aid as the only resource in every
case of need. Thanksgiving, is the gratitude which ascribes to him the
praise of all our blessings. As the Lord does not allow these to be derived
from any other quarter, so he demands that they shall be referred entirely
to himself. It is not enough to refrain from other gods. We must, at the
same time, devote ourselves wholly to him, not acting like certain impious
despisers, who regard it as the shortest method, to hold all religious
observance in derision. But here precedence must be given to true religion,
which will direct our minds to the living God. When duly imbued with the
knowledge of him, the whole aim of our lives will be to revere, fear, and
worship his majesty, to enjoy a share in his blessings, to have recourse
to him in every difficulty, to acknowledge, laud, and celebrate the magnificence
of his works, to make him, as it were, the sole aim of all our actions.
Next, we must beware of superstition, by which our minds are turned aside
from the true God, and carried to and fro after a multiplicity of gods.
Therefore, if we are contented with one God, let us call to mind what was
formerly observed, that all fictitious gods are to be driven far away,
and that the worship which he claims for himself is not to be mutilated.
Not a particle of his glory is to be withheld: everything belonging to
him must be reserved to him entire. The words, "before me," go to increase
the indignity, God being provoked to jealousy whenever we substitute our
fictions in his stead; just as an unfaithful wife stings her husband's
heart more deeply when her adultery is committed openly before his eyes.
Therefore, God having by his present power and grace declared that he had
respect to the people whom he had chosen, now, in order to deter them from
the wickedness of revolt, warns them that they cannot adopt strange gods
without his being witness and spectator of the sacrilege. To the audacity
of so doing is added the very great impiety of supposing that they can
mock the eye of God with their evasions. Far from this the Lord proclaims
that everything which we design, plan, or execute, lies open to his sight.
Our conscience must, therefore, keep aloof from the most distant thought
of revolt, if we would have our worship approved by the Lord. The glory
of his Godhead must be maintained entire and incorrupt, not merely by external
profession, but as under his eye, which penetrates the inmost recesses
of his heart.
Second Commandment
THOU SHALT NOT MAKE UNTO THEE ANY
GRAVEN IMAGE, OR ANY LIKENESS OFANYTHING THAT IS IN HEAVEN ABOVE, OR THAT
IS IN THE EARTH BENEATH, OR THAT IS IN THE WATER UNDER THE EARTH: THOU
SHALT NOT BOW DOWN THYSELF TO THEM, NOR SERVE THEM.
17. As in the
first commandment the Lord declares that he is one, and that besides him
no gods must be either worshipped or imagined, so he here more plainly
declares what his nature is, and what the kind of worship with which he
is to be honoured, in order that we may not presume to form any carnal
idea of him. The purport of the commandment, therefore, is, that he will
not have his legitimate worship profaned by superstitious rites. Wherefore,
in general, he calls us entirely away from the carnal frivolous observances
which our stupid minds are wont to devise after forming some gross idea
of the divine nature, while, at the same time, he instructs us in the worship
which is legitimate, namely, spiritual worship of his own appointment.
The grossest vice here prohibited is external idolatry. This commandment
consists of two parts. The former curbs the licentious daring which would
subject the incomprehensible God to our senses, or represent him under
any visible shape. The latter forbids the worship of images on any religious
ground. There is, moreover, a brief enumeration of all the forms by which
the Deity was usually represented by heathen and superstitious nations.
By "any thing which is in heaven above" is meant the sun, the moon, and
the stars, perhaps also birds, as in Deuteronomy, where the meaning is
explained, there is mention of birds as well as stars (Deut. 4:15). I would
not have made this observation, had I not seen that some absurdly apply
it to the angels. The other particulars I pass, as requiring no explanation.
We have already shown clearly enough (Book 1. chap. 11, 12) that every
visible shape of Deity which man devises is diametrically opposed to the
divine nature; and, therefore, that the moment idols appear, true religion
is corrupted and adulterated.
18. The threatening
subjoined ought to have no little effect in shaking off our lethargy. It
is in the following terms:--
I THE LORD THY GOD AM A JEALOUS20[4]
GOD, VISITING THE INIQUITY OF THE FATHERS UPON THE CHILDREN UNTO THE THIRD
AND FOURTH GENERATION OF THEM THAT HATE ME; AND SHEWING MERCY UNTO THOUSANDS
OF THEM THAT LOVE ME, AND KEEP MY COMMANDMENTS. The meaning here is the
same as if he had said, that our duty is to cleave to him alone. To induce
us to this, he proclaims his authority which he will not permit to be impaired
or despised with impunity. It is true, the word used is
El, which
means God; but as it is derived from a word meaning
strength, I
have had no hesitations in order to express the sense more fully, so to
render it as inserted on the margin. Secondly, he calls himself
jealous,
because he cannot bear a partner. Thirdly, he declares that he will vindicate
his majesty and glory, if any transfer it either to the creatures or to
graven images; and that not by a simple punishment of brief duration, but
one extending to the third and fourth generation of such as imitate the
impiety of their progenitors. In like manner, he declares his constant
mercy and kindness to the remote posterity of those who love him, and keep
his Law. The Lord very frequently addresses us in the character of a husband;205
the union by which he connects us with himself, when he receives us into
the bosom of the Church, having some resemblance to that of holy wedlock,
because founded on mutual faith. As he performs all the offices of a true
and faithful husband, so he stipulates for love and conjugal chastity from
us; that is, that we do not prostitute our souls to Satan, to be defiled
with foul carnal lusts. Hence, when he rebukes the Jews for their apostasy,
he complains that they have cast off chastity, and polluted themselves
with adultery. Therefore, as the purer and chaster the husband is, the
more grievously is he offended when he sees his wife inclining to a rival;
so the Lord, who has betrothed us to himself in truth, declares that he
burns with the hottest jealousy whenever, neglecting the purity of his
holy marriage, we defile ourselves with abominable lusts, and especially
when the worship of his Deity, which ought to have been most carefully
kept unimpaired, is transferred to another, or adulterated with some superstition;
since, in this way, we not only violate our plighted troth, but defile
the nuptial couch, by giving access to adulterers.
19. In the threatening
we must attend to what is meant when God declares that he will visit the
iniquity of the fathers upon the children unto the third and fourth generation.
It seems inconsistent with the equity of the divine procedure to punish
the innocent for another's fault; and the Lord himself declares, that "the
son shall not bear the iniquity of the father," (Ezek. 18:20). But still
we meet more than once with a declaration as to the postponing of the punishment
of the sins of fathers to future generations. Thus Moses repeatedly addresses
the Lord as "visiting the iniquity of the fathers upon the children unto
the third and fourth generation," (Num. 14:18). In like manner, Jeremiah,
"Thou showest loving-kindness unto thousands, and recompenses the iniquity
of the fathers into the bosom of their children after them," (Jer. 32:18).
Some feeling sadly perplexed how to solve this difficulty, think it is
to be understood of temporal punishments only, which it is said sons may
properly bear for the sins of their parents, because they are often inflicted
for their own safety. This is indeed true; for Isaiah declared to Hezekiah,
that his children should be stript of the kingdom, and carried away into
captivity, for a sin which he had committed (Isa. 39:7); and the households
of Pharaoh and Abimelech were made to suffer for an injury done to Abraham
(Gen. 12:17; 20:3-18). But the attempt to solve the question in this way
is an evasion rather than a true interpretation. For the punishment denounced
here and in similar passages is too great to be confined within the limits
of the present life. We must therefore understand it to mean, that a curse
from the Lord righteously falls not only on the head of the guilty individual,
but also on all his lineage. When it has fallen, what can be anticipated
but that the father, being deprived of the Spirit of God, will live most
flagitiously; that the son, being in like manner forsaken of the Lord,
because of his father's iniquity, will follow the same road to destruction;
and be followed in his turn by succeeding generations, forming a seed of
evil-doers?
20. First, let
us examine whether such punishment is inconsistent with the divine justice.
If human nature is universally condemned, those on whom the Lord does not
bestow the communication of his grace must be doomed to destruction; nevertheless,
they perish by their own iniquity, not by unjust hatred on the part of
God. There is no room to expostulate, and ask why the grace of God does
not forward their salvation as it does that of others. Therefore, when
God punishes the wicked and flagitious for their crimes, by depriving their
families of his grace for many generations, who will dare to bring a charge
against him for this most righteous vengeance? But it will be said, the
Lord, on the contrary, declares, that the son shall not suffer for the
father's sin (Ezek. 18:20). Observe the scope of that passage. The Israelites,
after being subjected to a long period of uninterrupted calamities, had
begun to say, as a proverb, that their fathers had eaten the sour grape,
and thus set the children's teeth on edge; meaning that they, though in
themselves righteous and innocent, were paying the penalty of sins committed
by their parents, and this more from the implacable anger than the duly
tempered severity of God. The prophet declares it was not so: that they
were punished for their own wickedness; that it was not in accordance with
the justice of God that a righteous son should suffer for the iniquity
of a wicked father; and that nothing of the kind was exemplified in what
they suffered. For, if the visitation of which we now speak is accomplished
when God withdraws from the children of the wicked the light of his truth
and the other helps to salvation, the only way in which they are accursed
for their fathers' wickedness is in being blinded and abandoned by God,
and so left to walk in their parents' steps. The misery which they suffer
in time, and the destruction to which they are finally doomed, are thus
punishments inflicted by divine justice, not for the sins of others, but
for their own iniquity.
21. On the other
hand, there is a promise of mercy to thousands--a promise which is frequently
mentioned in Scripture, and forms an article in the solemn covenant made
with the Church--I will be "a God unto thee, and to thy seed after thee,"
(Gen. 17:7). With reference to this, Solomon says, "The just man walketh
in his integrity: his children are blessed after him," (Prov. 20:7); not
only in consequence of a religious education (though this certainly is
by no means unimportant), but in consequence of the blessing promised in
the covenant--viz. that the divine favour will dwell for ever in the families
of the righteous. Herein is excellent consolation to believers, and great
ground of terror to the wicked; for if, after death, the mere remembrance
of righteousness and iniquity have such an influence on the divine procedure,
that his blessing rests on the posterity of the righteous, and his curse
on the posterity of the wicked, much more must it rest on the heads of
the individuals themselves. Notwithstanding of this, however, the offspring
of the wicked sometimes amends, while that of believers degenerates; because
the Almighty has not here laid down an inflexible rule which might derogate
from his free election. For the consolation of the righteous, and the dismay
of the sinner, it is enough that the threatening itself is not vain or
nugatory, although it does not always take effect. For, as the temporal
punishments inflicted on a few of the wicked are proofs of the divine wrath
against sin, and of the future judgment that will ultimately overtake all
sinners, though many escape with impunity even to the end of their lives,
so, when the Lord gives one example of blessing a son for his father's
sake, by visiting him in mercy and kindness, it is a proof of constant
and unfailing favour to his worshipers. On the other hand, when, in any
single instance, he visits the iniquity of the father on the son, he gives
intimation of the judgment which awaits all the reprobate for their own
iniquities. The certainty of this is the principal thing here taught. Moreover,
the Lord, as it were by the way, commends the riches of his mercy by extending
it to thousands, while he limits his vengeance to four generations.
Third Commandment.
THOU SHALT NOT TAKE THE NAME OF THE
LORD THY GOD IN VAIN.
22. The purport
of this Commandment is, that the majesty of the name of God is to be held
sacred. In sum, therefore, it means, that we must not profane it by using
it irreverently or contemptuously. This prohibition implies a corresponding
precept--viz. that it be our study and care to treat his name with religious
veneration. Wherefore it becomes us to regulate our minds and our tongues,
so as never to think or speak of God and his mysteries without reverence
and great soberness, and never, in estimating his works, to have any feeling
towards him but one of deep veneration. We must, I say, steadily observe
the three following things:--First, Whatever our mind conceives
of him, whatever our tongue utters, must bespeak his excellence, and correspond
to the sublimity of his sacred name; in short, must be fitted to extol
its greatness. Secondly, We must not rashly and preposterously pervert
his sacred word and adorable mysteries to purposes of ambition, or avarice,
or amusement, but, according as they bear the impress of his dignity, must
always maintain them in due honour and esteem. Lastly, We must not
detract from or throw obloquy upon his works, as miserable men are wont
insultingly to do, but must laud every action which we attribute to him
as wise, and just, and good. This is to sanctify the name of God. When
we act otherwise, his name is profaned with vain and wicked abuse, because
it is applied to a purpose foreign to that to which it is consecrated.
Were there nothing worse, in being deprived of its dignity it is gradually
brought into contempt. But if there is so much evil in the rash and unseasonable
employment of the divine name, there is still more evil in its being employed
for nefarious purposes, as is done by those who use it in necromancy, cursing,
illicit exorcisms, and other impious incantations. But the Commandment
refers especially to the case of oaths, in which a perverse employment
of the divine name is particularly detestable; and this it does the more
effectually to deter us from every species of profanation. That the thing
here commanded relates to the worship of God, and the reverence due to
his name, and not to the equity which men are to cultivate towards each
other, is apparent from this, that afterwards, in the Second Table, there
is a condemnation of the perjury and false testimony by which human society
is injured, and that the repetition would be superfluous, if, in this Commandment,
the duty of charity were handled. Moreover, this is necessary even for
distinction, because, as was observed, God has, for good reason, divided
his Law into two tables. The inference then is, that God here vindicates
his own right, and defends his sacred name, but does not teach the duties
which men owe to men.
23. In the first
place, we must consider what an oath is. An oath, then, is calling God
to witness that what we say is true. Execrations being manifestly insulting
to God, are unworthy of being classed among oaths. That an oath, when duly
taken, is a species of divine worship, appears from many passages of Scripture,
as when Isaiah prophesies of the admission of the Assyrians and Egyptians
to a participation in the covenant, he says, "In that day shall five cities
in the land of Egypt speak the language of Canaan, and swear to the Lord
of hosts," (Isaiah 19:18). Swearing by the name of the Lord here means,
that they will make a profession of religion. In like manner, speaking
of the extension of the Redeemer's kingdom, it is said, "He who blesseth
himself in the earth shall bless himself in the God of truth: and he that
sweareth in the earth shall swear by the God of truth," (Isaiah 65:16).
In Jeremiah it is said, "If they will diligently learn the ways of my people,
to swear by my name, The Lord liveth; as they taught my people to swear
by Baal; then shall they be built in the midst of my people," (Jer. 12:16).
By appealing to the name of the Lord, and calling him to witness, we are
justly said to declare our own religious veneration of him. For we thus
acknowledge that he is eternal and unchangeable truth, inasmuch as we not
only call upon him, in preference to others, as a fit witness to the truth,
but as its only assertor, able to bring hidden things to light, a discerner
of the hearts. When human testimony fails, we appeal to God as witness,
especially when the matter to be proved lies hid in the conscience. For
which reason, the Lord is grievously offended with those who swear by strange
gods, and construes such swearing as a proof of open revolt, "Thy children
have forsaken me, and sworn by them that are no gods," (Jer. 5:7). The
heinousness of the offence is declared by the punishment denounced against
it, "I will cut off them that swear by the Lord, and that swear by Malcham,"
(Zeph. 1:4, 5).
24. Understanding
that the Lord would have our oaths to be a species of divine worship, we
must be the more careful that they do not, instead of worship, contain
insult, or contempt, and vilification. It is no slight insult to swear
by him and do it falsely: hence in the Law this is termed profanation (Lev.
19:12). For if God is robbed of his truth, what is it that remains? Without
truth he could not be God. But assuredly he is robbed of his truth, when
he is made the approver and attester of what is false. Hence, when Joshua
is endeavouring to make Achan confess the truth, he says, "My son, give,
I pray thee, glory to the Lord God of Israel," (Joshua 7:19); intimating,
that grievous dishonour is done to God when men swear by him falsely. And
no wonder; for, as far as in them lies, his sacred name is in a manner
branded with falsehood. That this mode of expression was common among the
Jews whenever any one was called upon to take an oath, is evident from
a similar obtestation used by the Pharisees, as given in John (John 9:24);
Scripture reminds us of the caution which we ought to use by employing
such expressions as the following:--"As the Lord liveth;" "God do so and
more also;" "I call God for a record upon my soul."206 Such
expressions intimate, that we cannot call God to witness our statement,
without imprecating his vengeance for perjury if it is false.
25. The name
of God is vulgarised and vilified when used in oaths, which, though true,
are superfluous. This, too, is to take his name in vain. Wherefore, it
is not sufficient to abstain from perjury, unless we, at the same time,
remember that an oath is not appointed or allowed for passion or pleasure,
but for necessity; and that, therefore, a licentious use is made of it
by him who uses it on any other than necessary occasions. Moreover, no
case of necessity can be pretended, unless where some purpose of religion
or charity is to be served. In this matter, great sin is committed in the
present day--sin the more intolerable in this, that its frequency has made
it cease to be regarded as a fault, though it certainly is not accounted
trivial before the judgment-seat of God. The name of God is everywhere
profaned by introducing it indiscriminately in frivolous discourse; and
the evil is disregarded, because it has been long and audaciously persisted
in with impunity. The commandment of the Lord, however, stands; the penalty
also stands, and will one day receive effect. Special vengeance will be
executed on those who have taken the name of God in vain. Another form
of violation is exhibited, when, with manifest impiety, we, in our oaths,
substitute the holy servants of God for God himself,207 thus
conferring upon them the glory of his Godhead. It is not without cause
the Lord has, by a special commandment, required us to swear by his name,
and, by a special prohibition, forbidden us to swear by other gods.208
The Apostle gives a clear attestation to the same effect, when he says,
that "men verily swear by the greater;" but that "when God made promise
to Abraham, because he could swear by no greater, he sware by himself;"
(Heb. 6:16, 13).
26. The Anabaptists,
not content with this moderate use of oaths, condemn all, without exception,
on the ground of our Saviour's general prohibition, "I say unto you, Swear
not at all:" "Let your speech be Yea, yea; Nay, nay: for whatsoever is
more than these cometh of evil," (Mt. 5:34; James 5:12). In this way, they
inconsiderately make a stumbling-stone of Christ, setting him in opposition
to the Father, as if he had descended into the world to annul his decrees.
In the Law, the Almighty not only permits an oath as a thing that is lawful
(this were amply sufficient), but, in a case of necessity, actually commands
it (Exod. 22:11). Christ again declares, that he and his Father are one;
that he only delivers what was commanded of his Father; that his doctrine
is not his own, but his that sent him (John 10:18, 30; 7:16). What then?
Will they make God contradict himself, by approving and commanding at one
time, what he afterwards prohibits and condemns? But as there is some difficulty
in what our Saviour says on the subject of swearing, it may be proper to
consider it a little. Here, however, we shall never arrive at the true
meaning, unless we attend to the design of Christ, and the subject of which
he is treating. His purpose was, neither to relax nor to curtail the Law,
but to restore the true and genuine meaning, which had been greatly corrupted
by the false glosses of the Scribes and Pharisees. If we attend to this
we shall not suppose that Christ condemned all oaths but those only which
transgressed the rule of the Law. It is evident, from the oaths themselves,
that the people were accustomed to think it enough if they avoided perjury,
whereas the Law prohibits not perjury merely, but also vain and superfluous
oaths. Therefore our Lord, who is the best interpreter of the Law, reminds
them that there is a sin not only in perjury, but in swearing. How in swearing?
Namely, by swearing vainly. Those oaths, however, which are authorised
by the Law, he leaves safe and free. Those who condemn oaths think their
argument invincible when they fasten on the expression, not at all.
The expression applies not to the word swear, but to the subjoined
forms of oaths. For part of the error consisted in their supposing, that
when they swore by the heaven and the earth, they did not touch the name
of God. The Lord, therefore, after cutting off the principal source of
prevarication, deprives them of all subterfuges, warning them against supposing
that they escape guilt by suppressing the name of God, and appealing to
heaven and earth. For it ought here to be observed in passing, that although
the name of God is not expressed, yet men swear by him in using indirect
forms, as when they swear by the light of life, by the bread they eat,
by their baptism, or any other pledges of the divine liberality towards
them. Some erroneously suppose that our Saviour, in that passage, rebukes
superstition, by forbidding men to swear by heaven and earth, and Jerusalem.
He rather refutes the sophistical subtilty of those who thought it nothing
vainly to utter indirect oaths, imagining that they thus spared the holy
name of God, whereas that name is inscribed on each of his mercies. The
case is different, when any mortal living or dead, or an angel, is substituted
in the place of God, as in the vile form devised by flattery in heathen
nations, "By the life or genius of the king"; for, in this case,
the false apotheosis obscures and impairs the glory of the one God. But
when nothing else is intended than to confirm what is said by an appeal
to the holy name of God, although it is done indirectly, yet his majesty
is insulted by all frivolous oaths. Christ strips this abuse of every vain
pretext when he says "Swear not at all". To the same effect is the passage
in which James uses the words of our Saviour above quoted (James 5:12).
For this rash swearing has always prevailed in the world, notwithstanding
that it is a profanation of the name of God. If you refer the words, "not
at all", to the act itself, as if every oath, without exception, were
unlawful, what will be the use of the explanation which immediately follows--Neither
by heaven, neither by the earth, &c.? These words make it clear, that
the object in view was to meet the cavils by which the Jews thought they
could extenuate their fault.
27. Every person
of sound judgment must now see that in that passage our Lord merely condemned
those oaths which were forbidden by the Law. For he who in his life exhibited
a model of the perfection which he taught, did not object to oaths whenever
the occasion required them; and the disciples, who doubtless in all things
obeyed their Master, followed the same rule. Who will dare to say that
Paul would have sworn (Rom. 1:9; 2 Cor. 1:23) if an oath had been altogether
forbidden? But when the occasion calls for it, he adjures without any scruple,
and sometimes even imprecates. The question, however, is not yet disposed
of. For some think that the only oaths exempted from the prohibition are
public oaths, such as those which are administered to us by the magistrate,
or independent states employ in ratifying treaties, or the people take
when they swear allegiance to their sovereign, or the soldier in the case
of the military oath, and others of a similar description. To this class
they refer (and justly) those protestations in the writings of Paul, which
assert the dignity of the Gospel; since the Apostles, in discharging their
office, were not private individuals, but the public servants of God. I
certainly deny not that such oaths are the safest because they are most
strongly supported by passages of Scripture. The magistrate is enjoined,
in a doubtful matter, to put the witness upon oath; and he in his turn
to answer upon oath; and an Apostle says, that in this way there is an
end of all strife (Heb. 6:16). In this commandment, both parties are fully
approved. Nay, we may observe, that among the ancient heathens a public
and solemn oath was held in great reverence, while those common oaths which
were indiscriminately used were in little or no estimation, as if they
thought that, in regard to them, the Deity did not interpose. Private oaths
used soberly, sacredly, and reverently, on necessary occasions, it were
perilous to condemn, supported as they are by reason and example. For if
private individuals are permitted, in a grave and serious matter, to appeal
to God as a judge, much more may they appeal to him as a witness. Your
brother charges you with perfidy. You, as bound by the duties of charity,
labour to clear yourself from the charge. He will on no account be satisfied.
If, through his obstinate malice, your good name is brought into jeopardy,
you can appeal, without offence, to the judgment of God, that he may in
time manifest your innocence. If the terms are weighed, it will be found
that it is a less matter to call upon him to be witness; and I therefore
see not how it can be called unlawful to do so. And there is no want of
examples. If it is pretended that the oath which Abraham and Isaac made
with Abimelech was of a public nature, that by which Jacob and Laban bound
themselves in mutual league was private. Boaz, though a private man, confirmed
his promise of marriage to Ruth in the same way. Obadiah, too, a just man,
and one that feared God, though a private individual, in seeking to persuade
Elijah, asseverates with an oath.209 I hold, therefore, that
there is no better rule than so to regulate our oaths that they shall neither
be rash, frivolous, promiscuous, nor passionate, but be made to serve a
just necessity; in other words, to vindicate the glory of God, or promote
the edification of a brother. This is the end of the Commandment.
Fourth Commandment.
REMEMBER THE SABBATH DAY TO KEEP IT
HOLY. SIX DAYS SHALT THOU LABOUR AND DO ALL THY WORK: BUT THE SEVENTH DAY
IS THE SABBATH OF THE LORD THY GOD. IN IT THOU SHALT NOT DO ANY WORK, &C.
28. The purport
of the commandment is, that being dead to our own affections and works,
we meditate on the kingdom of God, and in order to such meditation, have
recourse to the means which he has appointed. But as this commandment stands
in peculiar circumstances apart from the others, the mode of exposition
must be somewhat different. Early Christian writers are wont to call it
typical, as containing the external observance of a day which was abolished
with the other types on the advent of Christ. This is indeed true; but
it leaves the half of the matter untouched. Wherefore, we must look deeper
for our exposition, and attend to three cases in which it appears to me
that the observance of this commandment consists. First, under the rest
of the seventh days the divine Lawgiver meant to furnish the people of
Israel with a type of the spiritual rest by which believers were to cease
from their own works, and allow God to work in them. Secondly he meant
that there should be a stated day on which they should assemble to hear
the Law, and perform religious rites, or which, at least, they should specially
employ in meditating on his works, and be thereby trained to piety. Thirdly,
he meant that servants, and those who lived under the authority of others,
should be indulged with a day of rest, and thus have some intermission
from labour.
29. We are taught
in many passages210 that this adumbration of spiritual rest
held a primary place in the Sabbath. Indeed, there is no commandment the
observance of which the Almighty more strictly enforces. When he would
intimate by the Prophets that religion was entirely subverted, he complains
that his sabbaths were polluted, violated, not kept, not hallowed; as if,
after it was neglected, there remained nothing in which he could be honoured.
The observance of it he eulogises in the highest terms, and hence, among
other divine privileges, the faithful set an extraordinary value on the
revelation of the Sabbath. In Nehemiah, the Levites, in the public assembly,
thus speak: "Thou madest known unto them thy holy sabbath, and commandedst
them precepts, statutes, and laws, by the hand of Moses thy servant." You
see the singular honour which it holds among all the precepts of the Law.
All this tends to celebrate the dignity of the mystery, which is most admirably
expressed by Moses and Ezekiel. Thus in Exodus: "Verily my sabbaths shall
ye keep: for it is a sign between me and you throughout your generations;
that ye may know that I am the Lord that does sanctify you. Ye shall keep
my sabbath therefore; for it is holy unto you: every one that defileth
it shall surely be put to death: for whosoever does any work therein, that
soul shall be cut off from among his people. Six days may work be done;
but in the seventh is the sabbath of rest, holy to the Lord: whosoever
does any work in the sabbath day, he shall surely be put to death. Wherefore
the children of Israel shall keep the sabbath, to observe the sabbath throughout
their generations, for a perpetual covenant. It is a sign between me and
the children of Israel for ever," (Exodus 31:13-17). Ezekiel is still more
full, but the sum of what he says amounts to this: that the sabbath is
a sign by which Israel might know that God is their sanctifier. If our
sanctification consists in the mortification of our own will, the analogy
between the external sign and the thing signified is most appropriate.
We must rest entirely, in order that God may work in us; we must resign
our own will, yield up our heart, and abandon all the lusts of the flesh.
In short, we must desist from all the acts of our own mind, that God working
in us, we may rest in him, as the Apostle also teaches (Heb. 3:13; 4:3,
9).
30. This complete
cessation was represented to the Jews by the observance of one day in seven,
which, that it might be more religiously attended to, the Lord recommended
by his own example. For it is no small incitement to the zeal of man to
know that he is engaged in imitating his Creator. Should any one expect
some secret meaning in the number seven, this being in Scripture the number
for perfection, it may have been selected, not without cause, to denote
perpetuity. In accordance with this, Moses concludes his description of
the succession of day and night on the same day on which he relates that
the Lord rested from his works. Another probable reason for the number
may be, that the Lord intended that the Sabbath never should be completed
before the arrival of the last day. We here begin our blessed rest in him,
and daily make new progress in it; but because we must still wage an incessant
warfare with the flesh, it shall not be consummated until the fulfilment
of the prophecy of Isaiah: "From one new moon to another, and from one
sabbath to another, shall all flesh come to worship before me, saith the
Lord," (Isaiah 66:23); in other words, when God shall be "all in all,"
(I Cor. 15:28). It may seem, therefore, that by the seventh day the Lord
delineated to his people the future perfection of his sabbath on the last
day, that by continual meditation on the sabbath, they might throughout
their whole lives aspire to this perfection.
31. Should these
remarks on the number seem to any somewhat far-fetched, I have no objection
to their taking it more simply: that the Lord appointed a certain day on
which his people might be trained, under the tutelage of the Law, to meditate
constantly on the spiritual rest, and fixed upon the seventh, either because
he foresaw it would be sufficient, or in order that his own example might
operate as a stronger stimulus; or, at least to remind men that the Sabbath
was appointed for no other purpose than to render them conformable to their
Creator. It is of little consequence which of these be adopted, provided
we lose not sight of the principal thing delineated--viz. the mystery of
perpetual resting from our works. To the contemplation of this, the Jews
were every now and then called by the prophets, lest they should think
a carnal cessation from labour sufficient. Beside the passages already
quoted, there is the following: "If thou turn away thy foot from the sabbath,
from doing thy pleasure on my holy day; and call the sabbath a delight,
the holy of the Lord, honourable; and shalt honour him, not doing thine
own ways, nor finding thine own pleasure, nor speaking thine own words:
then shalt thou delight thyself in the Lord," (Isaiah 58:13, 14). Still
there can be no doubt, that, on the advent of our Lord Jesus Christ, the
ceremonial part of the commandment was abolished. He is the truth, at whose
presence all the emblems vanish; the body, at the sight of which the shadows
disappear. He, I say, is the true completion of the sabbath: "We are buried
with him by baptism unto death: that like as Christ was raised up from
the dead by the glory of the Father, even so we should walk in newness
of life," (Rom. 6:4). Hence, as the Apostle elsewhere says, "Let no man
therefore judge you in meat, or in drink, or in respect of an holiday,
or of the new moon, or of the sabbath days; which are a shadow of things
to come; but the body is of Christ," (Col. 2:16, 17); meaning by body the
whole essence of the truth, as is well explained in that passage. This
is not contented with one day, but requires the whole course of our lives,
until being completely dead to ourselves, we are filled with the life of
God. Christians, therefore, should have nothing to do with a superstitious
observance of days.
32. The two other
cases ought not to be classed with ancient shadows, but are adapted to
every age. The sabbath being abrogated, there is still room among us, first,
to assemble on stated days for the hearing of the Word, the breaking of
the mystical bread, and public prayer; and, secondly, to give our servants
and labourers relaxation from labour. It cannot be doubted that the Lord
provided for both in the commandment of the Sabbath. The former is abundantly
evinced by the mere practice of the Jews. The latter Moses has expressed
in Deuteronomy in the following terms: "The seventh day is the sabbath
of the Lord thy God: in it thou shalt not do any work, thou, nor thy son,
nor thy daughter, nor thy man-servant, nor thy maid-servant;--that thy
man-servant and thy maid-servant may rest as well as thou," (Deut. 5:14).
Likewise in Exodus, "That thine ox and thine ass may rest, and the son
of thy handmaid, and the stranger, may be refreshed," (Exod. 23:12). Who
can deny that both are equally applicable to us as to the Jews? Religious
meetings are enjoined us by the word of God; their necessity, experience
itself sufficiently demonstrates. But unless these meetings are stated,
and have fixed days allotted to them, how can they be held? We must, as
the apostle expresses it, do all things decently and in orders (1 Cor.
14:40). So impossible, however, would it be to preserve decency and order
without this politic arrangements that the dissolution of it would instantly
lead to the disturbance and ruin of the Church. But if the reason for which
the Lord appointed a sabbath to the Jews is equally applicable to us, no
man can assert that it is a matter with which we have nothing to do. Our
most provident and indulgent Parent has been pleased to provide for our
wants not less than for the wants of the Jews. Why, it may be asked, do
we not hold daily meetings, and thus avoid the distinction of days? Would
that we were privileged to do so! Spiritual wisdom undoubtedly deserves
to have some portion of every day devoted to it. But if, owing to the weakness
of many, daily meetings cannot be held, and charity will not allow us to
exact more of them, why should we not adopt the rule which the will of
God has obviously imposed upon us?
33. I am obliged
to dwell a little longer on this because some restless spirits are now
making an outcry about the observance of the Lord's day. They complain
that Christian people are trained in Judaism, because some observance of
days is retained. My reply is, That those days are observed by us without
Judaism, because in this matter we differ widely from the Jews. We do not
celebrate it with most minute formality, as a ceremony by which we imagine
that a spiritual mystery is typified, but we adopt it as a necessary remedy
for preserving order in the Church. Paul informs us that Christians are
not to be judged in respect of its observance, because it is a shadow of
something to come (Col. 2:16); and, accordingly, he expresses a fear lest
his labour among the Galatians should prove in vain, because they still
observed days (Gal. 4:10, 11). And he tells the Romans that it is superstitious
to make one day differ from another (Rom. 14:5). But who, except those
restless men, does not see what the observance is to which the Apostle
refers? Those persons had no regard to that politic and ecclesiastical
arrangement,211 but by retaining the days as types of spiritual
things, they in so far obscured the glory of Christ, and the light of the
Gospel. They did not desist from manual labour on the ground of its interfering
with sacred study and meditation, but as a kind of religious observance;
because they dreamed that by their cessation from labour, they were cultivating
the mysteries which had of old been committed to them. It was, I say, against
this preposterous observance of days that the Apostle inveighs, and not
against that legitimate selection which is subservient to the peace of
Christian society. For in the churches established by him, this was the
use for which the Sabbath was retained. He tells the Corinthians to set
the first day apart for collecting contributions for the relief of their
brethren at Jerusalem (1 Cor. 16:2). If superstition is dreaded, there
was more danger in keeping the Jewish sabbath than the Lord's day as Christians
now do. It being expedient to overthrow superstition, the Jewish holy day
was abolished; and as a thing necessary to retain decency, orders and peace,
in the Church, another day was appointed for that purpose.
34. It was not,
however, without a reason that the early Christians substituted what we
call the Lord's day for the Sabbath. The resurrection of our Lord being
the end and accomplishment of that true rest which the ancient sabbath
typified, this day, by which types were abolished serves to warn Christians
against adhering to a shadowy ceremony. I do not cling so to the number
seven as to bring the Church under bondage to it, nor do I condemn churches
for holding their meetings on other solemn days, provided they guard against
superstition. This they will do if they employ those days merely for the
observance of discipline and regular order. The whole may be thus summed
up: As the truth was delivered typically to the Jews, so it is imparted
to us without figure; first, that during our whole lives we may aim at
a constant rest from our own works, in order that the Lord may work in
us by his Spirit; secondly that every individual, as he has opportunity,
may diligently exercise himself in private, in pious meditation on the
works of God, and, at the same time, that all may observe the legitimate
order appointed by the Church, for the hearing of the word, the administration
of the sacraments, and public prayer: And, thirdly, that we may avoid oppressing
those who are subject to us. In this way, we get quit of the trifling of
the false prophets, who in later times instilled Jewish ideas into the
people, alleging that nothing was abrogated but what was ceremonial in
the commandment,212 (this they term in their language the taxation
of the seventh day), while the moral part remains--viz. the observance
of one day in seven.213 But this is nothing else than to insult
the Jews, by changing the day, and yet mentally attributing to it the same
sanctity; thus retaining the same typical distinction of days as had place
among the Jews. And of a truth, we see what profit they have made by such
a doctrine. Those who cling to their constitutions go thrice as far as
the Jews in the gross and carnal superstition of sabbatism; so that the
rebukes which we read in Isaiah (Isa. 1:13; 58:13) apply as much to those
of the present day,214 as to those to whom the Prophet addressed
them. We must be careful, however, to observe the general doctrine--viz.
in order that religion may neither be lost nor languish among us, we must
diligently attend on our religious assemblies, and duly avail ourselves
of those external aids which tend to promote the worship of God.
Fifth Commandment.
HONOUR THY FATHER AND THY MOTHER:
THAT THY DAYS MAY BE LONG UPON THE LAND WHICH THE LORD THY GOD GIVETH THEE.
35. The end of
this commandment is, that since the Lord takes pleasure in the preservation
of his own ordinance, the degrees of dignity appointed by him must be held
inviolable. The sum of the commandment, therefore, will be, that we are
to look up to those whom the Lord has set over us, yielding them honour,
gratitude, and obedience. Hence it follows, that every thing in the way
of contempt, ingratitude, or disobedience, is forbidden. For the term honour
has this extent of meaning in Scripture. Thus when the Apostle says, "Let
the elders that rule well be counted worthy of double honour," (1 Tim.
5:17), he refers not only to the reverence which is due to them, but to
the recompense to which their services are entitled. But as this command
to submit is very repugnant to the perversity of the human mind (which,
puffed up with ambitious longings will scarcely allow itself to be subject),
that superiority which is most attractive and least invidious is set forth
as an example calculated to soften and bend our minds to habits of submission.
From that subjection which is most easily endured, the Lord gradually accustoms
us to every kind of legitimate subjection, the same principle regulating
all. For to those whom he raises to eminences he communicates his authority,
in so far as necessary to maintain their station. The titles of Father,
God, and Lord, all meet in him alone and hence whenever any one of them
is mentioned, our mind should be impressed with the same feeling of reverence.
Those, therefore, to whom he imparts such titles, he distinguishes by some
small spark of his refulgence, so as to entitle them to honour, each in
his own place. In this way, we must consider that our earthly father possesses
something of a divine nature in him, because there is some reason for his
bearing a divine title, and that he who is our prince and ruler is admitted
to some communion of honour with God.
36. Wherefore,
we ought to have no doubt that the Lord here lays down this universal rule--viz.
that knowing how every individual is set over us by his appointment, we
should pay him reverence, gratitude, obedience, and every duty in our power.
And it makes no difference whether those on whom the honour is conferred
are deserving or not. Be they what they may, the Almighty, by conferring
their station upon them, shows that he would have them honoured. The commandment
specifies the reverence due to those to whom we owe our being. This Nature
herself should in some measure teach us. For they are monsters, and not
men, who petulantly and contumeliously violate the paternal authority.
Hence, the Lord orders all who rebel against their parents to be put to
death, they being, as it where, unworthy of the light in paying no deference
to those to whom they are indebted for beholding it. And it is evident,
from the various appendices to the Law, that we were correct in stating,
that the honour here referred to consists of three parts, reverence, obedience,
and gratitude. The first of these the Lord enforces, when he commands that
whose curseth his father or his mother shall be put to death. In this way
he avenges insult and contempt. The second he enforces, when he denounces
the punishment of death on disobedient and rebellious children. To the
third belongs our Saviour's declaration, that God requires us to do good
to our parents (Mt. 15). And whenever Paul mentions this commandment, he
interprets it as enjoining obedience.215
37. A promise
is added by way of recommendation, the better to remind us how pleasing
to God is the submission which is here required. Paul applies that stimulus
to rouse us from our lethargy, when he calls this the first commandment
with promise; the promise contained in the First Table not being specially
appropriated to any one commandment, but extended to the whole law. Moreover,
the sense in which the promise is to be taken is as follows:--The Lord
spoke to the Israelites specially of the land which he had promised them
for an inheritance. If, then, the possession of the land was an earnest
of the divine favour, we cannot wonder if the Lord was pleased to testify
his favour, by bestowing long life, as in this way they were able long
to enjoy his kindness. The meaning therefore is: Honour thy father and
thy mother, that thou may be able, during the course of a long life, to
enjoy the possession of the land which is to be given thee in testimony
of my favour. But, as the whole earth is blessed to believers, we justly
class the present life among the number of divine blessings. Whence this
promise has, in like manner, reference to us also, inasmuch as the duration
of the present life is a proof of the divine benevolence toward us. It
is not promised to us, nor was it promised to the Jews, as if in itself
it constituted happiness, but because it is an ordinary symbol of the divine
favour to the pious. Wherefore, if any one who is obedient to parents happens
to be cut off before mature age (a thing which not infrequently happens),
the Lord nevertheless adheres to his promise as steadily as when he bestows
a hundred acres of land where he had promised only one. The whole lies
in this: We must consider that long life is promised only in so far as
it is a blessing from God, and that it is a blessing only in so far as
it is a manifestation of divine favour. This, however, he testifies and
truly manifests to his servants more richly and substantially by death.
38. Moreover,
while the Lord promises the blessing of present life to children who show
proper respect to their parents, he, at the same time, intimates that an
inevitable curse is impending over the rebellious and disobedient; and,
that it may not fail of execution, he, in his Law, pronounces sentence
of death upon theme and orders it to be inflicted. If they escape the judgment,
he, in some way or other, will execute vengeance. For we see how great
a number of this description of individuals fall either in battle or in
brawls; others of them are overtaken by unwonted disasters, and almost
all are a proof that the threatening is not used in vain. But if any do
escape till extreme old age, yet, because deprived of the blessing of God
in this life, they only languish on in wickedness, and are reserved for
severer punishment in the world to come, they are far from participating
in the blessing promised to obedient children. It ought to be observed
by the way, that we are ordered to obey parents only in the Lord. This
is clear from the principle already laid down: for the place which they
occupy is one to which the Lord has exalted them, by communicating to them
a portion of his own honour. Therefore the submission yielded to them should
be a step in our ascent to the Supreme Parent, and hence, if they instigate
us to transgress the law, they deserve not to be regarded as parents, but
as strangers attempting to seduce us from obedience to our true Father.
The same holds in the case of rulers, masters, and superiors of every description.
For it were unbecoming and absurd that the honour of God should be impaired
by their exaltation--an exaltation which, being derived from him, ought
to lead us up to him.216
Sixth Commandment.
THOU SHALT NOT KILL.
39. The purport of this commandment is
that since the Lord has bound the whole human race by a kind of unity,
the safety of all ought to be considered as entrusted to each. In general,
therefore, all violence and injustice, and every kind of harm from which
our neighbour's body suffers, is prohibited. Accordingly, we are required
faithfully to do what in us lies to defend the life of our neighbour; to
promote whatever tends to his tranquillity, to be vigilant in warding off
harm, and, when danger comes, to assist in removing it. Remembering that
the Divine Lawgiver thus speaks, consider, moreover, that he requires you
to apply the same rule in regulating your mind. It were ridiculous, that
he, who sees the thoughts of the heart, and has special regard to them,
should train the body only to rectitude. This commandment, therefore, prohibits
the murder of the heart, and requires a sincere desire to preserve our
brother's life. The hand, indeed, commits the murder, but the mind, under
the influence of wrath and hatred, conceives it. How can you be angry with
your brother, without passionately longing to do him harm? If you must
not be angry with him, neither must you hate him, hatred being nothing
but inveterate anger. However you may disguise the fact, or endeavour to
escape from it by vain pretexts. Where either wrath or hatred is, there
is an inclination to do mischief. If you still persist in tergiversation,
the mouth of the Spirit has declared, that "whosoever hateth his brother
is a murderer," (1 John 3:15); and the mouth of our Saviour has declared,
that "whosoever is angry with his brother without a cause shall be in danger
of the judgment: and whosoever shall say to his brother, Raca, shall be
in danger of the council: but whosoever shall say, Thou fool, shall be
in danger of hell fire," (Mt. 5:22).
40. Scripture notes a twofold equity
on which this commandment is founded. Man is both the image of God and
our flesh. Wherefore, if we would not violate the image of God, we must
hold the person of man sacred--if we would not divest ourselves of humanity
we must cherish our own flesh. The practical inference to be drawn from
the redemption and gift of Christ will be elsewhere considered.217
The Lord has been pleased to direct our attention to these two natural
considerations as inducements to watch over our neighbour's preservation--viz.
to revere the divine image impressed upon him, and embrace our own flesh.
To be clear of the crime of murder, it is not enough to refrain from shedding
man's blood. If in act you perpetrate, if in endeavour you plot, if in
wish and design you conceive what is adverse to another's safety, you have
the guilt of murder. On the other hand, if you do not according to your
means and opportunity study to defend his safety, by that inhumanity you
violate the law. But if the safety of the body is so carefully provided
for, we may hence infer how much care and exertion is due to the safety
of the soul, which is of immeasurably higher value in the sight of God.
Seventh Commandment.
THOU SHALT NOT COMMIT ADULTERY.
41. The purport
of this commandment is, that as God loves chastity and purity, we ought
to guard against all uncleanness. The substance of the commandment therefore
is, that we must not defile ourselves with any impurity or libidinous excess.
To this corresponds the affirmative, that we must regulate every part of
our conduct chastely and continently. The thing expressly forbidden is
adultery, to which lust naturally tends, that its filthiness (being of
a grosser and more palpable form, in as much as it casts a stain even on
the body) may dispose us to abominate every form of lust. As the law under
which man was created was not to lead a life of solitude, but enjoy a help
meet for him, and ever since he fell under the curse the necessity for
this mode of life is increased; the Lord made the requisite provision for
us in this respect by the institution of marriage, which, entered into
under his authority, he has also sanctified with his blessing. Hence, it
is evident, that any mode of cohabitation different from marriage is cursed
in his sight, and that the conjugal relation was ordained as a necessary
means of preventing us from giving way to unbridled lust. Let us beware,
therefore, of yielding to indulgence, seeing we are assured that the curse
of God lies on every man and woman cohabiting without marriage.
42. Now, since
natural feeling and the passions unnamed by the fall make the marriage
tie doubly necessary, save in the case of those whom God has by special
grace exempted, let every individual consider how the case stands with
himself. Virginity, I admit, is a virtue not to be despised; but since
it is denied to some, and to others granted only for a season, those who
are assailed by incontinence, and unable successfully to war against it,
should retake themselves to the remedy of marriage, and thus cultivate
chastity in the way of their calling. Those incapable of self-restraint,
if they apply not to the remedy allowed and provided for intemperance,
war with God and resist his ordinance. And let no man tell me (as many
in the present day do) that he can do all things, God helping! The help
of God is present with those only who walk in his ways (Ps. 91:14), that
is, in his callings from which all withdraw themselves who, omitting the
remedies provided by God, vainly and presumptuously strive to struggle
with and surmount their natural feelings. That continence is a special
gift from God, and of the class of those which are not bestowed indiscriminately
on the whole body of the Church, but only on a few of its members, our
Lord affirms (Mt. 19:12). He first describes a certain class of individuals
who have made themselves eunuchs for the kingdom of heavenly sake; that
is, in order that they may be able to devote themselves with more liberty
and less restraint to the things of heaven. But lest any one should suppose
that such a sacrifice was in every man's power, he had shown a little before
that all are not capable, but those only to whom it is specially given
from above. Hence he concludes, "He that is able to receive it, let him
receive it." Paul asserts the same thing still more plainly when he says,
"Every man has his proper gift of God, one after this manner, and another
after that," (1 Cor. 7:7).
43. Since we
are reminded by an express declaration, that it is not in every man's power
to live chaste in celibacy although it may be his most strenuous study
and aim to do so--that it is a special grace which the Lord bestows only
on certain individuals, in order that they may be less encumbered in his
service, do we not oppose God, and nature as constituted by him, if we
do not accommodate our mode of life to the measure of our ability? The
Lord prohibits fornication, therefore he requires purity and chastity.
The only method which each has of preserving it is to measure himself by
his capacity. Let no man rashly despise matrimony as a thing useless or
superfluous to him; let no man long for celibacy unless he is able to dispense
with the married state. Nor even here let him consult the tranquillity
or convenience of the flesh, save only that, freed from this tie, he may
be the readier and more prepared for all the offices of piety. And since
there are many on whom this blessing is conferred only for a time, let
every one, in abstaining from marriage, do it so long as he is fit to endure
celibacy. If he has not the power of subduing his passion, let him understand
that the Lord has made it obligatory on him to marry. The Apostle shows
this when he enjoins: "Nevertheless, to avoid fornication, let every man
have his own wife and let every woman have her own husband." "If they cannot
contain, let them marry." He first intimates that the greater part of men
are liable to incontinence; and then of those so liable, he orders all,
without exception, to have recourse to the only remedy by which unchastity
may be obviated. The incontinent, therefore, neglecting to cure their infirmity
by this means, sin by the very circumstance of disobeying the Apostle's
command. And let not a man flatter himself, that because he abstains from
the outward act he cannot be accused of unchastity. His mind may in the
meantime be inwardly inflamed with lust. For Paul's definition of chastity
is purity of mind, combined with purity of body. "The unmarried woman careth
for the things of the Lord, that she may be holy both in body and spirit,"
(1 Cor. 7:34). Therefore when he gives a reason for the former precept,
he not only says that it is better to marry than to live in fornication,
but that it is better to marry than to burn.
44. Moreover,
when spouses are made aware that their union is blessed by the Lord, they
are thereby reminded that they must not give way to intemperate and unrestrained
indulgence. For though honourable wedlock veils the turpitude of incontinence,
it does not follow that it ought forthwith to become a stimulus to it.
Wherefore, let spouses consider that all things are not lawful for them.
Let there be sobriety in the behaviour of the husband toward the wife,
and of the wife in her turn toward the husband; each so acting as not to
do any thing unbecoming the dignity and temperance of married life. Marriage
contracted in the Lord ought to exhibit measure and modesty--not run to
the extreme of wantonness. This excess Ambrose censured gravely, but not
undeservedly, when he described the man who shows no modesty or comeliness
in conjugal intercourse, as committing adultery with his wife.218
Lastly let us consider who the Lawgiver is that thus condemns fornication:
even He who, as he is entitled to possess us entirely, requires integrity
of body, soul, and spirit. Therefore, while he forbids fornication, he
at the same time forbids us to lay snares for our neighbour's chastity
by lascivious attire, obscene gestures, and impure conversation. There
was reason in the remark made by Archelaus to a youth clothed effeminately
and over-luxuriously, that it mattered not in what part his wantonness
appeared. We must have respect to God, who abhors all contaminations whatever
be the part of soul or body in which it appears. And that there may be
no doubt about it, let us remember, that what the Lord here commends is
chastity. If he requires chastity, he condemns every thing which is opposed
to it. Therefore, if you aspire to obedience, let not your mind burn within
with evil concupiscence, your eyes wanton after corrupting objects, nor
your body be decked for allurement; let neither your tongue by filthy speeches,
nor your appetite by intemperance, entice the mind to corresponding thoughts.
All vices of this description are a kind of stains which despoil chastity
of its purity.
Eighth Commandment.
THOU SHALT NOT STEAL.
45. The purport
is, that injustice being an abomination to God, we must render to every
man his due. In substance, then, the commandment forbids us to long after
other men's goods, and, accordingly, requires every man to exert himself
honestly in preserving his own. For we must consider, that what each individual
possesses has not fallen to him by chance, but by the distribution of the
sovereign Lord of all, that no one can pervert his means to bad purposes
without committing a fraud on a divine dispensation. There are very many
kinds of theft. One consists in violence, as when a man's goods are forcibly
plundered and carried off; another in malicious imposture, as when they
are fraudulently intercepted; a third in the more hidden craft which takes
possession of them with a semblance of justice; and a fourth in sycophancy,
which wiles them away under the pretence of donation. But not to dwell
too long in enumerating the different classes, we know that all the arts
by which we obtain possession of the goods and money of our neighbours,
for sincere affection substituting an eagerness to deceive or injure them
in any way, are to be regarded as thefts. Though they may be obtained by
an action at law, a different decision is given by God. He sees the long
train of deception by which the man of craft begins to lay nets for his
more simple neighbour, until he entangles him in its meshes--sees the harsh
and cruel laws by which the more powerful oppresses and crushes the feeble--sees
the enticements by which the more wily baits the hook for the less wary,
though all these escape the judgment of man, and no cognisance is taken
of them. Nor is the violation of this commandment confined to money, or
merchandise, or lands, but extends to every kind of right; for we defraud
our neighbours to their hurt if we decline any of the duties which we are
bound to perform towards them. If an agent or an indolent steward wastes
the substance of his employer, or does not give due heed to the management
of his property; if he unjustly squanders or luxuriously wastes the means
entrusted to him; if a servant holds his master in derision, divulges his
secrets, or in any way is treacherous to his life or his goods; if, on
the other hand, a master cruelly torments his household, he is guilty of
theft before God; since every one who, in the exercise of his calling,
performs not what he owes to others, keeps back, or makes away with what
does not belong to him.
46. This commandment,
therefore, we shall duly obey, if, contented with our own lot, we study
to acquire nothing but honest and lawful gain; if we long not to grow rich
by injustice, nor to plunder our neighbour of his goods, that our own may
thereby be increased; if we hasten not to heap up wealth cruelly wrung
from the blood of others; if we do not, by means lawful and unlawful, with
excessive eagerness scrape together whatever may glut our avarice or meet
our prodigality. On the other hand, let it be our constant aim faithfully
to lend our counsel and aid to all so as to assist them in retaining their
property; or if we have to do with the perfidious or crafty, let us rather
be prepared to yield somewhat of our right than to contend with them. And
not only so, but let us contribute to the relief of those whom we see under
the pressure of difficulties, assisting their want out of our abundance.
Lastly, let each of us consider how far he is bound in duty to others,
and in good faith pay what we owe. In the same way, let the people pay
all due honour to their rulers, submit patiently to their authority, obey
their laws and orders, and decline nothing which they can bear without
sacrificing the favour of God. Let rulers, again, take due charge of their
people, preserve the public peace, protect the good, curb the bad, and
conduct themselves throughout as those who must render an account of their
office to God, the Judge of all. Let the ministers of churches faithfully
give heed to the ministry of the word, and not corrupt the doctrine of
salvation, but deliver it purely and sincerely to the people of God. Let
them teach not merely by doctrine, but by example; in short, let them act
the part of good shepherds towards their flocks. Let the people, in their
turn, receive them as the messengers and apostles of God, render them the
honour which their Supreme Master has bestowed on them, and supply them
with such things as are necessary for their livelihood. Let parents be
careful to bring up, guide, and teach their children as a trust committed
to them by God. Let them not exasperate or alienate them by cruelty, but
cherish and embrace them with the levity and indulgence which becomes their
character. The regard due to parents from their children has already been
adverted to. Let the young respect those advanced in years as the Lord
has been pleased to make that age honourable. Let the aged also, by their
prudence and their experience (in which they are far superior), guide the
feebleness of youth, not assailing them with harsh and clamorous invectives
but tempering strictness with ease and affability. Let servants show themselves
diligent and respectful in obeying their masters, and this not with eye-service,
but from the heart, as the servants of God. Let masters also not be stern
and disobliging to their servants, nor harass them with excessive asperity,
nor treat them with insult, but rather let them acknowledge them as brethren
and fellow-servants of our heavenly Master, whom, therefore, they are bound
to treat with mutual love and kindness. Let every one, I say, thus consider
what in his own place and order he owes to his neighbours, and pay what
he owes. Moreover, we must always have a reference to the Lawgiver, and
so remember that the law requiring us to promote and defend the interest
and convenience of our fellow-men, applies equally to our minds and our
hands.
Ninth Commandment.
THOU SHALT NOT BEAR FALSE WITNESS
AGAINST THY NEIGHBOUR.
47. The purport
of the commandment is, since God, who is truth, abhors falsehood, we must
cultivate unfeigned truth towards each other. The sum, therefore, will
be, that we must not by calumnies and false accusations injure our neighbour's
name, or by falsehood impair his fortunes; in fine, that we must not injure
any one from petulance, or a love of evil-speaking. To this prohibition
corresponds the command, that we must faithfully assist every one, as far
as in us lies, in asserting the truth, for the maintenance of his good
name and his estate. The Lord seems to have intended to explain the commandment
in these words: "Thou shalt not raise a false report: put not thine hand
with the wicked to be an unrighteous witness." "Keep thee far from a false
matter," (Exod. 23:1, 7). In another passage, he not only prohibits that
species of falsehood which consists in acting the part of tale-bearers
among the people, but says, "Neither shalt thou stand against the blood
of thy neighbour," (Lev. 19:16). Both transgressions are distinctly prohibited.
Indeed, there can be no doubt, that as in the previous commandment he prohibited
cruelty unchastity, and avarice, so here he prohibits falsehood, which
consists of the two parts to which we have adverted. By malignant or vicious
detraction, we sin against our neighbour's good name: by lying, sometimes
even by casting a slur upon him, we injure him in his estate. It makes
no difference whether you suppose that formal and judicial testimony is
here intended, or the ordinary testimony which is given in private conversation.
For we must always recur to the consideration, that for each kind of transgression
one species is set forth by way of example, that to it the others may be
referred, and that the species chiefly selected, is that in which the turpitude
of the transgression is most apparent. It seems proper, however, to extend
it more generally to calumny and sinister insinuations by which our neighbours
are unjustly aggrieved. For falsehood in a court of justice is always accompanied
with perjury. But against perjury, in so far as it profanes and violates
the name of God, there is a sufficient provision in the third commandment.
Hence the legitimate observance of this precept consists in employing the
tongue in the maintenance of truth, so as to promote both the good name
and the prosperity of our neighbour. The equity of this is perfectly clear.
For if a good name is more precious than riches, a man, in being robbed
of his good name, is no less injured than if he were robbed of his goods;
while, in the latter case, false testimony is sometimes not less injurious
than rapine committed by the hand.
48. And yet it
is strange, with what supine security men everywhere sin in this respect.
Indeed, very few are found who do not notoriously labour under this disease:
such is the envenomed delight we take both in prying into and exposing
our neighbour's faults. Let us not imagine it is a sufficient excuse to
say that on many occasions our statements are not false. He who forbids
us to defame our neighbour's reputation by falsehood, desires us to keep
it untarnished in so far as truth will permit. Though the commandment is
only directed against falsehood, it intimates that the preservation of
our neighbour's good name is recommended. It ought to be a sufficient inducement
to us to guard our neighbour's good name, that God takes an interest in
it. Wherefore, evil-speaking in general is undoubtedly condemned. Moreover,
by evil-speaking, we understand not the rebuke which is administered with
a view of correcting; not accusation or judicial decision, by which evil
is sought to be remedied; not public censure, which tends to strike terror
into other offenders; not the disclosure made to those whose safety depends
on being forewarned, lest unawares they should be brought into danger,
but the odious crimination which springs from a malicious and petulant
love of slander. Nay, the commandment extends so far as to include that
scurrilous affected urbanity, instinct with invective, by which the failings
of others, under an appearance of sportiveness, are bitterly assailed,
as some are wont to do, who court the praise of wit, though it should call
forth a blush, or inflict a bitter pang. By petulance of this description,
our brethren are sometimes grievously wounded.219 But if we
turn our eye to the Lawgiver, whose just authority extends over the ears
and the mind, as well as the tongue, we cannot fail to perceive that eagerness
to listen to slander, and an unbecoming proneness to censorious judgments
are here forbidden. It were absurd to suppose that God hates the disease
of evil-speaking in the tongue, and yet disapproves not of its malignity
in the mind. Wherefore, if the true fear and love of God dwell in us, we
must endeavour, as far as is lawful and expedient, and as far as charity
admits, neither to listen nor give utterance to bitter and acrimonious
charges, nor rashly entertain sinister suspicions. As just interpreters
of the words and the actions of other men, let us candidly maintain the
honour due to them by our judgment, our ear, and our tongue.
Tenth Commandment.
THOU SHALT NOT COVET THY NEIGHBOUR'S
HOUSE, THOU SHALT NOT COVET THY NEIGHBOUR'S WIFE NOR HIS MAN-SERVANT, NOR
HIS MAID-SERVANT, NOR HIS OX NOR HIS ASS, NOR ANYTHING THAT IS THY NEIGHBOUR'S.
49. The purport
is: Since the Lord would have the whole soul pervaded with love, any feeling
of an adverse nature must be banished from our minds. The sum, therefore,
will be, that no thought be permitted to insinuate itself into our minds,
and inhale them with a noxious concupiscence tending to our neighbour's
loss. To this corresponds the contrary precept, that every thing which
we conceive, deliberate, will, or design, be conjoined with the good and
advantage of our neighbour. But here it seems we are met with a great and
perplexing difficulty. For if it was correctly said above, that under the
words adultery and theft, lust and an intention to injure and deceive are
prohibited, it may seem superfluous afterwards to employ a separate commandment
to prohibit a covetous desire of our neighbour's goods. The difficulty
will easily be removed by distinguishing between design and covetousness.220
Design, such as we have spoken of in the previous commandments, is a deliberate
consent of the will, after passion has taken possession of the mind. Covetousness
may exist without such deliberation and assent, when the mind is only stimulated
and tickled by vain and perverse objects. As, therefore, the Lord previously
ordered that charity should regulate our wishes, studies, and actions,
so he now orders us to regulate the thoughts of the mind in the same way,
that none of them may be depraved and distorted, so as to give the mind
a contrary bent. Having forbidden us to turn and incline our mind to wrath,
hatred, adultery, theft, and falsehood, he now forbids us to give our thoughts
the same direction.
50. Nor is such
rectitude demanded without reason. For who can deny the propriety of occupying
all the powers of the mind with charity? If it ceases to have charity for
its aim, who can question that it is diseased? How comes it that so many
desires of a nature hurtful to your brother enter your mind, but just because,
disregarding him, you think only of yourself? Were your mind wholly imbued
with charity, no portion of it would remain for the entrance of such thoughts.
In so far, therefore, as the mind is devoid of charity, it must be under
the influence of concupiscence. Some one will object that those fancies
which casually rise up in the mind, and forthwith vanish away, cannot properly
be condemned as concupiscences, which have their seat in the heart. I answer,
That the question here relates to a description of fancies which while
they present themselves to our thoughts, at the same time impress and stimulate
the mind with cupidity, since the mind never thinks of making some choice,
but the heart is excited and tends towards it. God therefore commands a
strong and ardent affection, an affection not to be impeded by any portion,
however minute, of concupiscence. He requires a mind so admirably arranged
as not to be prompted in the slightest degree contrary to the law of love.
Lest you should imagine that this view is not supported by any grave authority,
I may mention that it was first suggested to me by Augustine.221
But although it was the intention of God to prohibit every kind of perverse
desire, he, by way of example, sets before us those objects which are generally
regarded as most attractive: thus leaving no room for cupidity of any kind,
by the interdiction of those things in which it especially delights and
loves to revel.
Such, then, is
the Second Table of the Law, in which we are sufficiently instructed in
the duties which we owe to man for the sake of God, on a consideration
of whose nature the whole system of love is founded. It were vain, therefore,
to inculcate the various duties taught in this table, without placing your
instructions on the fear and reverence to God as their proper foundation.
I need not tell the considerate reader, that those who make two precepts
out of the prohibition of covetousness, perversely split one thing into
two. There is nothing in the repetition of the words, "Thou shalt not covet."
The "house" being first put down, its different parts are afterwards enumerated,
beginning with the "wife;" and hence it is clear, that the whole ought
to be read consecutively, as is properly done by the Jews. The sum of the
whole commandment, therefore, is, that whatever each individual possesses
remain entire and secure, not only from injury, or the wish to injure,
but also from the slightest feeling of covetousness which can spring up
in the mind.
51. It will not
now be difficult to ascertain the general end contemplated by the whole
Law--viz. the fulfilment of righteousness, that man may form his life on
the model of the divine purity. For therein God has so delineated his own
character, that any one exhibiting in action what is commanded, would in
some measure exhibit a living image of God. Wherefore Moses, when he wished
to fix a summary of the whole in the memory of the Israelites, thus addressed
them, "And now, Israel, what does the Lord thy God require of thee, but
to fear the Lord thy God, to walk in all his ways, and to love him, and
to serve the Lord thy God with all thy heart, and with all thy soul, to
keep the commandments of the Lord and his statutes which I command thee
this day for thy good?" (Deut. 10:12, 13). And he ceased not to reiterate
the same thing, whenever he had occasion to mention the end of the Law.
To this the doctrine of the Law pays so much regard, that it connects man,
by holiness of life, with his God; and, as Moses elsewhere expresses it
(Deut. 6:5; 11:13), and makes him cleave to him. Moreover, this holiness
of life is comprehended under the two heads above mentioned. "Thou shalt
love the Lord thy God with all thy heart, and with all thy soul, and with
all thy mind, and with all thy strength, and thy neighbour as thyself."
First, our mind must be completely filled with love to God, and then this
love must forthwith flow out toward our neighbour. This the Apostle shows
when he says, "The end of the commandment is charity out of a pure heart,
and a good conscience, and of faith unfeigned," (1 Tim. 1:5). You see that
conscience and faith unfeigned are placed at the head, in other words,
true piety; and that from this charity is derived. It is a mistake then
to suppose, that merely the rudiments and first principles of righteousness
are delivered in the Law, to form, as it were, a kind of introduction to
good works, and not to guide to the perfect performance of them. For complete
perfection, nothing more can be required than is expressed in these passages
of Moses and Paul. How far, pray, would he wish to go, who is not satisfied
with the instruction which directs man to the fear of God, to spiritual
worship, practical obedience; in fine, purity of conscience, faith unfeigned,
and charity? This confirms that interpretation of the Law which searches
out, and finds in its precepts, all the duties of piety and charity. Those
who merely search for dry and meagre elements, as if it taught the will
of God only by halves, by no means understand its end, the Apostle being
witness.
52. As, in giving
a summary of the Law, Christ and the Apostles sometimes omit the First
Table, very many fall into the mistake of supposing that their words apply
to both tables. In Matthew, Christ calls "judgment, mercy, and faith,"
the "weightier matters of the Law." I think it clear, that by faith
is here meant veracity towards men. But in order to extend the words to
the whole Law, some take it for piety towards God. This is surely to no
purpose. For Christ is speaking of those works by which a man ought to
approve himself as just. If we attend to this, we will cease to wonder
why, elsewhere, when asked by the young man, "What good thing shall I do,
that I may have eternal life?" he simply answers, that he must keep the
commandments, "Thou shalt do no murder, Thou shalt not commit adultery,
Thou shalt not steal, Thou shalt not bear false witness, Honour thy father
and thy mother: and, Thou shalt love thy neighbour as thyself," (Mt. 19:16,
18). For the obedience of the First Table consisted almost entirely either
in the internal affection of the heart, or in ceremonies. The affection
of the heart was not visible, and hypocrites were diligent in the observance
of ceremonies; but the works of charity were of such a nature as to be
a solid attestation of righteousness. The same thing occurs so frequently
in the Prophets, that it must be familiar to every one who has any tolerable
acquaintance with them.222 For, almost on every occasion, when
they exhort men to repentance, omitting the First Table, they insist on
faith, judgment, mercy, and equity. Nor do they, in this way, omit the
fear of God. They only require a serious proof of it from its signs. It
is well known, indeed, that when they treat of the Law, they generally
insist on the Second Table, because therein the cultivation of righteousness
and integrity is best manifested. There is no occasion to quote passages.
Every one can easily for himself perceive the truth of my observation.
53. Is it then
true, you will ask, that it is a more complete summary of righteousness
to live innocently with men, than piously towards God? By no means; but
because no man, as a matter of course, observes charity in all respects,
unless he seriously fear God, such observance is a proof of piety also.
To this we may add, that the Lord, well knowing that none of our good deeds
can reach him (as the Psalmist declares, Psalm 16:2), does not demand from
us duties towards himself, but exercises us in good works towards our neighbour.
Hence the Apostle, not without cause, makes the whole perfection of the
saints to consist in charity (Eph. 3:19; Col. 3:14). And in another passage,
he not improperly calls it the "fulfilling of the law," adding, that "he
that loveth another has fulfilled the law," (Rom. 13:8). And again, "All
the law is fulfilled in this: Thou shalt love thy neighbour as thyself,"
(Gal. 5:14). For this is the very thing which Christ himself teaches when
he says, "All things whatsoever ye would that men should do to you, do
ye even so to them: for this is the law and the prophets," (Mt. 7:12).
It is certain that, in the law and the prophets, faith, and whatever pertains
to the due worship of God, holds the first place, and that to this charity
is made subordinate; but our Lord means, that in the Law the observance
of justice and equity towards men is prescribed as the means which we are
to employ in testifying a pious fear of God, if we truly possess it.
54. Let us therefore
hold, that our life will be framed in best accordance with the will of
God, and the requirements of his Law, when it is, in every respect, most
advantageous to our brethren. But in the whole Law, there is not one syllable
which lays down a rule as to what man is to do or avoid for the advantage
of his own carnal nature. And, indeed, since men are naturally prone to
excessive self-love, which they always retain, how great soever their departure
from the truth may be, there was no need of a law to inflame a love already
existing in excess. Hence it is perfectly plain,223 that the
observance of the Commandments consists not in the love of ourselves, but
in the love of God and our neighbour; and that he leads the best and holiest
life who as little as may be studies and lives for himself; and that none
lives worse and more unrighteously than he who studies and lives only for
himself, and seeks and thinks only of his own. Nay, the better to express
how strongly we should be inclined to love our neighbour, the Lord has
made self-love as it were the standard, there being no feeling in our nature
of greater strength and vehemence. The force of the expression ought to
be carefully weighed. For he does not (as some sophists have stupidly dreamed)
assign the first place to self-love, and the second to charity. He rather
transfers to others the love which we naturally feel for ourselves. Hence
the Apostle declares, that charity "seeketh not her own," (1 Cor. 13:5).
Nor is the argument worth a straw, That the thing regulated must always
be inferior to the rule. The Lord did not make self-love the rule, as if
love towards others was subordinate to it; but whereas, through natural
gravity, the feeling of love usually rests on ourselves, he shows that
it ought to diffuse itself in another direction--that we should be prepared
to do good to our neighbour with no less alacrity, ardour, and solicitude,
than to ourselves.
55. Our Saviour
having shown, in the parable of the Samaritan (Luke 10:36), that the term
neighbour comprehends the most remote stranger, there is no reason
for limiting the precept of love to our own connections. I deny not that
the closer the relation the more frequent our offices of kindness should
be. For the condition of humanity requires that there be more duties in
common between those who are more nearly connected by the ties of relationship,
or friendship, or neighbourhood. And this is done without any offence to
God, by whose providence we are in a manner impelled to do it. But I say
that the whole human race, without exception, are to be embraced with one
feeling of charity: that here there is no distinction of Greek or Barbarian,
worthy or unworthy, friend or foe, since all are to be viewed not in themselves,
but in God. If we turn aside from this view, there is no wonder that we
entangle ourselves in error. Wherefore, if we would hold the true course
in love, our first step must be to turn our eyes not to man, the sight
of whom might oftener produce hatred than love, but to God, who requires
that the love which we bear to him be diffused among all mankind, so that
our fundamental principle must ever be, Let a man be what he may, he is
still to be loved, because God is loved.
56. Wherefore,
nothing could be more pestilential than the ignorance or wickedness of
the Schoolmen in converting the precepts respecting revenge and the love
of enemies (precepts which had formerly been delivered to all the Jews,
and were then delivered universally to all Christians) into counsels which
it was free to obey or disobey, confining the necessary observance of them
to the monks, who were made more righteous than ordinary Christians, by
the simple circumstance of voluntarily binding themselves to obey counsels.
The reason they assign for not receiving them as laws is, that they seem
too heavy and burdensome, especially to Christians, who are under the law
of grace. Have they, indeed, the hardihood to remodel the eternal law of
God concerning the love of our neighbour? Is there a page of the Law in
which any such distinction exists; or rather do we not meet in every page
with commands which, in the strictest terms, require us to love our enemies?
What is meant by commanding us to feed our enemy if he is hungry, to bring
back his ox or his ass if we meet it going astray, or help it up if we
see it lying under its burden? (Prov. 25:21; Exod. 23:4). Shall we show
kindness to cattle for man's sake, and have no feeling of good will to
himself? What? Is not the word of the Lord eternally true: "Vengeance is
mine, I will repay?" (Deut. 32:35). This is elsewhere more explicitly stated:
"Thou shalt not avenge, nor bear any grudge against the children of thy
people," (Lev. 19:18). Let them either erase these passages from the Law,
or let them acknowledge the Lord as a Lawgiver, not falsely feign him to
be merely a counsellor.
57. And what,
pray, is meant by the following passage, which they have dared to insult
with this absurd gloss? "Love yourenemies, bless them that curse you, do
good to them that hate you, and pray for them which despitefully use you,
and persecute you; that ye may be the children of your Father which is
in heaven," (Mt. 5:44, 45). Who does not here concur in the reasoning of
Chrysostom (lib. de Compunctione Cordis, et ad Rom. 7), that the nature
of the motive makes it plain that these are not exhortations, but precepts?
For what is left to us if we are excluded from the number of the children
of God? According to the Schoolmen, monks alone will be the children of
our Father in heaven--monks alone will dare to invoke God as their Father.
And in the meantime, how will it fare with the Church? By the same rule,
she will be confined to heathens and publicans. For our Saviour says, "If
ye love them which love you, what reward have ye? do not even the publicans
the same?" It will truly be well with us if we are left only the name of
Christians, while we are deprived of the inheritance of the kingdom of
heaven! Nor is the argument of Augustine less forcible: "When the Lord
forbids adultery, he forbids it in regard to the wife of a foe not less
than the wife of a friend; when he forbids theft, he does not allow stealing
of any description, whether from a friend or an enemy," (August. Lib. de
Doctr. Christ). Now, these two commandments, "Thou shalt not steal, Thou
shalt not commit adultery," Paul brings under the rule of love; nay, he
says that they are briefly comprehended in this saying, "Thou shalt love
thy neighbour as thyself," (Rom. 13:9). Therefore, Paul must either be
a false interpreter of the Law, or we must necessarily conclude, that under
this precept we are bound to love our enemies just as our friends. Those,
then, show themselves to be in truth the children of Satan who thus licentiously
shake off a yoke common to the children of God. It may be doubted whether,
in promulgating this dogma, they have displayed greater stupidity or impudence.
There is no ancient writer who does not hold it as certain that these are
pure precepts. It was not even doubted in the age of Gregory, as is plain
from his decided assertion; for he holds it to be incontrovertible that
they are precepts. And how stupidly they argue! The burden, say they, were
too difficult for Christians to hear! As if any thing could be imagined
more difficult than to love the Lord with all the heart, and soul, and
strength. Compared with this Law, there is none which may not seem easy,
whether it be to love our enemy, or to banish every feeling of revenge
from our minds. To our weakness, indeed, every thing, even to the minutest
tittle of the Law, is arduous and difficult. In the Lord we have strength.
It is his to give what he orders, and to order what he wills. That Christians
are under the law of grace, means not that they are to wander unrestrained
without law, but that they are engrafted into Christ, by whose grace they
are freed from the curse of the Law, and by whose Spirit they have the
Law written in their hearts. This grace Paul has termed, but not in the
proper sense of the term, a law, alluding to the Law of God, with which
he was contrasting it. The Schoolmen, laying hold of the term Law,
make it the ground-work of their vain speculations.224
58. The same
must be said of their application of the term, venial sin, both to the
hidden impiety which violates the First Table, and the direct transgression
of the last commandment of the Second Table.225 They define
venial sin to be, desire unaccompanied with deliberate assent, and not
remaining long in the heart. But I maintain that it cannot even enter the
heart unless through a want of those things which are required in the Law.
We are forbidden to have strange gods. When the mind, under the influence
of distrust, looks elsewhere or is seized with some sudden desire to transfer
its blessedness to some other quarter, whence are these movements, however
evanescent, but just because there is some empty corner in the soul to
receive such temptations? And, not to lengthen out the discussion, there
is a precept to love God with the whole heart, and mind, and soul; and,
therefore, if all the powers of the soul are not directed to the love of
God, there is a departure from the obedience of the Law; because those
internal enemies which rise up against the dominion of God, and countermand
his edicts prove that his throne is not well established in our consciences.
It has been shown that the last commandment goes to this extent. Has some
undue longing sprung up in our mind? Then we are chargeable with covetousness,
and stand convicted as transgressors of the Law. For the Law forbids us
not only to meditate and plan our neighbour's loss, but to be stimulated
and inflamed with covetousness. But every transgression of the Law lays
us under the curse, and therefore even the slightest desires cannot be
exempted from the fatal sentence. "In weighing our sins," says Augustine,
"let us not use a deceitful balance, weighing at our own discretion what
we will, and how we will, calling this heavy and that light: but let us
use the divine balance of the Holy Scriptures, as taken from the treasury
of the Lord, and by it weigh every offence, nay, not weigh, but rather
recognise what has been already weighed by the Lord," (August. De Bapt.
cont. Donatist. Lib. 2 chap. 6). And what saith the Scripture? Certainly
when Paul says, that "the wages of sin is death," (Rom. 6:23), he shows
that he knew nothing of this vile distinction. As we are but too prone
to hypocrisy, there was very little occasion for this sop to soothe our
torpid consciences.
59. I wish they
would consider what our Saviour meant when he said, "Whosoever shall break
one of these least commandments, and shall teach men so, he shall be called
the least in the kingdom of heaven," (Mt. 5:19). Are they not of this number
when they presume to extenuate the transgression of the Law, as if it were
unworthy of death? The proper course had been to consider not simply what
is commanded, but who it is that commands, because every least transgression
of his Law derogates from his authority. Do they count it a small matter
to insult the majesty of God in any one respect? Again, since God has explained
his will in the Law, every thing contrary to the Law is displeasing to
him. Will they feign that the wrath of God is so disarmed that the punishment
of death will not forthwith follow upon it? He has declared plainly (if
they could be induced to listen to his voice, instead of darkening his
clear truth by their insipid subtleties), "The soul that sinneth it shall
die," (Ezek. 18:20). Again, in the passage lately quoted, "The wages of
sin is death." What these men acknowledge to be sin, because they are unable
to deny it, they contend is not mortal. Having already indulged this madness
too long, let them learn to repent; or, if they persist in their infatuation,
taking no further notice of them, let the children of God remember that
all sin is mortal, because it is rebellion against the will of God, and
necessarily provokes his anger; and because it is a violation of the Law,
against every violation of which, without exception, the judgment of God
has been pronounced. The faults of the saints are indeed venial, not, however,
in their own nature, but because, through the mercy of God, they obtain
pardon.
CHAPTER 9.
CHRIST, THOUGH KNOWN TO THE JEWS UNDER
THE LAW, YET ONLY MANIFESTED UNDER THE GOSPEL.
There are three principal
heads in this chapter. I. Preparatory to a consideration of the knowledge
of Christ, and the benefits procured by him; the 1st and 2nd sections are
occupied with the dispensation of this knowledge, which, after the manifestation
of Christ in the flesh, was more clearly revealed than under the Law. II.
A refutation of the profane dream of Servetus, that the promises are entirely
abrogated, sec. 3. Likewise, a refutation of those who do not properly
compare the Law with the Gospel, sec. 4. III. A necessary and brief exposition
of the ministry of John Baptist, which occupies an intermediate place between
the law and the Gospel.
Sections.
1. The holy fathers under the Law
saw the day of Christ, though obscurely. He is more fully revealed to us
under the Gospel. A reason for this, confirmed by the testimony of Christ
and his Apostles.
2. The term Gospel, used in its most
extensive sense, comprehends the attestations of mercy which God gave to
the fathers. Properly, however, it means the promulgation of grace exhibited
in the God-man Jesus Christ.
3. The notion of Servetus, that the
promises are entirely abolished, refuted. Why we must still trust to the
promises of God. Another reason. Solution of a difficulty.
4. Refutation of those who do not
properly compare the Law and the Gospel. Answer to certain questions here
occurring. The Law and the Gospel briefly compared.
5. Third part of the chapter. Of
the ministry of John the Baptist.
1. SINCE God was pleased (and not
in vain) to testify in ancient times by means of expiations and sacrifices
that he was a Father, and to set apart for himself a chosen people, he
was doubtless known even then in the same character in which he is now
fully revealed to us. Accordingly Malachi, having enjoined the Jews to
attend to the Law of Moses (because after his death there was to be an
interruption of the prophetical office), immediately after declares that
the Sun of righteousness should arise (Mal. 4:2); thus intimating, that
though the Law had the effect of keeping the pious in expectation of the
coming Messiah, there was ground to hope for much greater light on his
advent. For this reason, Peter, speaking of the ancient prophets, says,
"Unto whom it was revealed, that not unto themselves, but unto us, they
did minister the things which are now reported unto you by them that have
preached the gospel unto you, with the Holy Ghost sent down from heaven,"
(1 Pet. 1:12). Not that the prophetical doctrine was useless to the ancient
people, or unavailing to the prophets themselves, but that they did not
obtain possession of the treasure which God has transmitted to us by their
hands. The grace of which they testified is now set familiarly before our
eyes. They had only a slight foretaste; to us is given a fuller fruition.
Our Saviour, accordingly, while he declares that Moses testified of him,
extols the superior measure of grace bestowed upon us (John 5:46). Addressing
his disciples, he says, "Blessed are your eyes, for they see, and your
ears, for they hear. For verily I say unto you, That many prophets and
righteous men have desired to see those things which ye see, and have not
seen them, and to hear those things which ye hear, and have not heard them,"
(Mt. 13:16; Luke 10:23). It is no small commendation of the gospel revelation,
that God has preferred us to holy men of old, so much distinguished for
piety. There is nothing in this view inconsistent with another passage,
in which our Saviour says, "Your father Abraham rejoiced to see my day,
and he saw it and was glad," (John 8:56). For though the event being remote,
his view of it was obscure, he had full assurance that it would one day
be accomplished; and hence the joy which the holy patriarch experienced
even to his death. Nor does John Baptist, when he says, "No man has seen
God at any time; the only begotten Son, which is in the bosom of the Father,
he has declared him," (John 1:18), exclude the pious who had previously
died from a participation in the knowledge and light which are manifested
in the person of Christ; but comparing their condition with ours, he intimates
that the mysteries which they only beheld dimly under shadows are made
clear to us; as is well explained by the author of the Epistle to the Hebrews,
in these words, "God, who at sundry times and in divers manners spake in
time past unto the fathers by the prophets, has in these last days spoken
unto us by his Son," (Heb. 1:1, 2). Hence, although this only begotten
Son, who is now to us the brightness of his Father's glory and the express
image of his person, was formerly made known to the Jews, as we have elsewhere
shown from Paul, that he was the Deliverer under the old dispensation;
it is nevertheless true, as Paul himself elsewhere declares, that "God,
who commanded the light to shine out of darkness, has shined in our hearts,
to give the light of the knowledge of the glory of God in the face of Jesus
Christ," (2 Cor. 4:6); because, when he appeared in this his image, he
in a manner made himself visible, his previous appearance having been shadowy
and obscure. More shameful and more detestable, therefore, is the ingratitude
of those who walk blindfold in this meridian light. Accordingly, Paul says
that "the god of this world has blinded their minds, lest the light of
the glorious gospel of Christ should shine unto them," (2 Cor. 4:4).
2. By the
Gospel, I understand the clear manifestation of the mystery of Christ.
I confess, indeed, that inasmuch as the term Gospel is applied by Paul
to the doctrine of faith (2 Tim. 4:10), it includes all the promises by
which God reconciles men to himself, and which occur throughout the Law.
For Paul there opposes faith to those terrors which vex and torment the
conscience when salvation is sought by means of works. Hence it follows
that Gospel, taken in a large sense, comprehends the evidences of
mercy and paternal favour which God bestowed on the Patriarchs. Still,
by way of excellence, it is applied to the promulgation of the grace manifested
in Christ. This is not only founded on general use, but has the sanction
of our Saviour and his Apostles. Hence it is described as one of his peculiar
characteristics, that he preached the Gospel of the kingdom (Mt. 4:23;
9:35; Mark 1:14). Mark, in his preface to the Gospel, calls it "The
beginning of the Gospel of Jesus Christ." There is no use of collecting
passages to prove what is already perfectly known. Christ at his advent
"brought life and immortality to light through the Gospel," (2 Tim. 1:10).
Paul does not mean by these words that the Fathers were plunged in the
darkness of death before the Son of God became incarnate; but he claims
for the Gospel the honourable distinction of being a new and extraordinary
kind of embassy, by which God fulfilled what he had promised, these promises
being realised in the person of the Son. For though believers have at all
times experienced the truth of Paul's declaration, that "all the promises
of God in him are yea and amen," inasmuch as these promises were sealed
upon their hearts; yet because he has in his flesh completed all the parts
of our salvation, this vivid manifestation of realities was justly entitled
to this new and special distinction. Accordingly, Christ says, "Hereafter
ye shall see heaven open, and the angels of God ascending and descending
upon the Son of man." For though he seems to allude to the ladder which
the Patriarch Jacob saw in vision, he commends the excellence of his advent
in this, that it opened the gate of heaven, and gave us familiar access
to it.
3. Here we must
guard against the diabolical imagination of Servetus, who, from a wish,
or at least the pretence of a wish, to extol the greatness of Christ, abolishes
the promises entirely, as if they had come to an end at the same time with
the Law. He pretends, that by the faith of the Gospel all the promises
have been fulfilled; as if there was no distinction between us and Christ.
I lately observed that Christ had not left any part of our salvation incomplete;
but from this it is erroneously inferred, that we are now put in possession
of all the blessings purchased by him; thereby implying, that Paul was
incorrect in saying, "We are saved by hope," (Rom. 3:24). I admit, indeed,
that by believing in Christ we pass from death unto life; but we must at
the same time remember the words of John, that though we know we are "the
sons of God," "it does not yet appear what we shall be: but we know that,
when he shall appear, we shall be like him; for we shall see him as he
is," (1 John 3:2). Therefore, although Christ offers us in the Gospel a
present fulness of spiritual blessings, fruition remains in the keeping
of hope,226 until we are divested of corruptible flesh, and
transformed into the glory of him who has gone before us. Meanwhile, in
leaning on the promises, we obey the command of the Holy Spirit, whose
authority ought to have weight enough with us to silence all the barkings
of that impure dog. We have it on the testimony of Paul, that "Godliness
is profitable unto all things, having promise of the life that now is,
and of that which is to come," (1 Tim. 4:8); for which reason, he glories
in being "an apostle of Jesus Christ, according to the promise of life
which is in Christ Jesus" (2 Tim. 1:1). And he elsewhere reminds us, that
we have the same promises which were given to the saints in ancient time
(2 Cor. 7:1). In fine, he makes the sum of our felicity consist in being
sealed with the Holy Spirit of promise. Indeed we have no enjoyment of
Christ, unless by embracing him as clothed with his own promises. Hence
it is that he indeed dwells in our hearts and yet we are as pilgrims in
regard to him, because "we walk by faith, not by sight," (2 Cor. 5:6, 7).
There is no inconsistency in the two things--viz. that in Christ we possess
every thing pertaining to the perfection of the heavenly life, and yet
that faith is only a vision "of things not seen," (Heb. 11:1). Only there
is this difference to be observed in the nature or quality of the promises,
that the Gospel points with the finger to what the Law shadowed under types.
4. Hence, also,
we see the error of those who, in comparing the Law with the Gospel, represent
it merely as a comparison between the merit of works, and the gratuitous
imputation of righteousness. The contrast thus made is by no means to be
rejected, because, by the term Law, Paul frequently understands that rule
of holy living in which God exacts what is his due, giving no hope of life
unless we obey in every respect; and, on the other hand, denouncing a curse
for the slightest failure. This Paul does when showing that we are freely
accepted of God, and accounted righteous by being pardoned, because that
obedience of the Law to which the reward is promised is nowhere to be found.
Hence he appropriately represents the righteousness of the Law and the
Gospel as opposed to each other. But the Gospel has not succeeded the whole
Law in such a sense as to introduce a different method of salvation. It
rather confirms the Law, and proves that every thing which it promised
is fulfilled. What was shadow, it has made substance. When Christ says
that the Law and the Prophets were until John, he does not consign the
fathers to the curse, which, as the slaves of the Law, they could not escape.
He intimates that they were only imbued with the rudiments, and remained
far beneath the height of the Gospel doctrine. Accordingly Paul, after
calling the Gospel "the power of God unto salvation to every one that believeth,"
shortly after adds, that it was "witnessed by the Law and the Prophets,"
(Rom. 1:16; 3:21). And in the end of the same Epistle, though he describes
"the preaching of Jesus Christ" as "the revelation of the mystery which
was kept secret since the world began," he modifies the expression by adding,
that it is "now made manifest" "by the scriptures of the prophets," (Rom.
16:25, 26). Hence we infer, that when the whole Law is spoken of, the Gospel
differs from it only in respect of clearness of manifestation. Still, on
account of the inestimable riches of grace set before us in Christ, there
is good reason for saying, that by his advent the kingdom of heaven was
erected on the earth (Mt. 12:28).
5. John stands
between the Law and the Gospel, holding an intermediate office allied to
both. For though he gave a summary of the Gospel when he pronounced Christ
to be "the Lamb of God who taketh away the sin of the world," yet, inasmuch
as he did not unfold the incomparable power and glory which shone forth
in his resurrection, Christ says that he was not equal to the Apostles.
For this is the meaning of the words: "Among them that are born of woman,
there has not risen a greater than John the Baptist: notwithstanding, he
that is least in the kingdom of heaven is greater than he," (Mt. 11:28).
He is not there commending the persons of men, but after preferring John
to all the Prophets, he gives the first place to the preaching of the Gospel,
which is elsewhere designated by the kingdom of heaven. When John himself,
in answer to the Jews, says that he is only "a voice," (John 1:23), as
if he were inferior to the Prophets it is not in pretended humility but
he means to teach that the proper embassy was not entrusted to him, that
he only performed the office of a messenger, as had been foretold by Malachi,
"Behold, I will send you Elijah the prophets before the coming of the great
and dreadful day of the Lord," (Mal. 4:5). And, indeed, during the whole
course of his ministry, he did nothing more than prepare disciples for
Christ. He even proves from Isaiah that this was the office to which he
was divinely appointed. In this sense, he is said by Christ to have been
"a burning and a shining light," (John 5:35), because full day had not
yet appeared. And yet this does not prevent us from classing him among
the preachers of the gospel, since he used the same baptism which was afterwards
committed to the Apostles. Still, however, he only began that which had
freer course under the Apostles, after Christ was taken up into the heavenly
glory.
CHAPTER 10.
THE RESEMBLANCE BETWEEN THE OLD TESTAMENT
AND THE NEW.22[7]
This chapter consists
of four parts. I. The sum, utility, and necessity of this discussion, sec.
1. II. A proof that, generally speaking, the old and new dispensations
are in reality one, although differently administered. Three points in
which the two dispensations entirely agree, sec. 2-4. III. The Old Testament,
as well as the New, had regard to the hope of immortality and a future
life, whence two other resemblances or points of agreement follow--viz.
that both were established by the free mercy of God, and confirmed by the
intercession of Christ. This proved by many arguments, passages of Scripture,
and examples, see. 5-23. IV. Conclusion of the whole chapter, where, for
fuller confirmation, certain passages of Scripture are produced. Refutation
of the cavils of the Sadducees and other Jews.
Sections.
1. Introduction, showing the necessity
of proving the similarity of both dispensations in opposition to Servetus
and the Anabaptists.
2. This similarity in general. Both
covenants truly one, though differently administered. Three things in which
they entirely agree.
3. First general similarity, or agreement--viz.
that the Old Testament, equally with the New, extended its promises beyond
the present life, and held out a sure hope of immortality. Reason for this
resemblance. Objection answered.
4. The other two points of resemblance--viz.
that both covenants were established in the mercy of God, and confirmed
by the mediation of Christ.
5. The first of these points of resemblance
being the foundation of the other two, a lengthened proof is given of it.
The first argument taken from a passage, in which Paul, showing that the
sacraments of both dispensations had the same meaning, proves that the
condition of the ancient church was similar to ours.
6. An objection from John 6:49--viz.
that the Israelites ate manna in the wilderness, and are dead, whereas
Christians eat the flesh of Christ, and die not. Answer reconciling this
passage of the Evangelist with that of the Apostle.
7. Another proof from the Law and
the Prophets--viz. the power of the divine word in quickening souls before
Christ was manifested. Hence the believing Jews were raised to the hope
of eternal life.
8. Third proof from the form of the
covenant, which shows that it was in reality one both before and after
the manifestation of Christ in the flesh.
9. Confirmation of the former proof
from the clear terms in which the form is expressed. Another confirmation
derived from the former and from the nature of God.
10. Fourth proof from examples. Adam,
Abel, and Noah, when tried with various temptations, neglecting the present,
aspired with living faith and invincible hope to a better life. They, therefore,
had the same aim as believers under the Gospel.
11. Continuation of the fourth proof
from the example of Abraham, whose call and whole course of life shows
that he ardently aspired to eternal felicity. Objection disposed of.
12. Continuation of the fourth proof
from the examples of Isaac and Jacob.
13. Conclusion of the fourth proof.
Adam, Abel, Noah, Abraham, Isaac, Jacob, and others under the Law, looked
for the fulfilment of the divine promises not on the earth, but in heaven.
Hence they termed this life an earthly pilgrimage, and desired to be buried
in the land of Canaan, which was a figure of eternal happiness.
14. A fifth proof from Jacob's earnestness
to obtain the birth-right. This shows a prevailing desire of future life.
This perceived in some degree by Balaam.
15. A sixth proof from David, who
expects such great things from the Lord, and yet declares the present life
to be mere vanity.
16. A seventh proof also from David.
His descriptions of the happiness of believers could only be realised in
a future state.
17. An eighth proof from the common
feeling and confession of all the pious who sought by faith and hope to
obtain in heaven what they did not see in the present shadowy life.
18. A continuation and confirmation
of the former proof from the exultation of the righteous, even amid the
destruction of the world.
19. A ninth proof from Job, who spoke
most distinctly of this hope. Two objections disposed of.
20. A tenth proof from the later
Prophets, who taught that the happiness of the righteous was placed beyond
the limits of the present life.
21. This clearly established by Ezekiel's
vision of the dry bones, and a passage in Isaiah.
22. Last proof from certain passages
in the Prophets, which clearly show the future immortality of the righteous
in the kingdom of heaven.
23. Conclusion of the whole discussion
concerning the similarity of both dispensations. For fuller confirmation,
four passages of Scripture produced. Refutation of the error of the Sadducees
and other Jews, who denied eternal salvation and the sure hope of the Church.
1. FROM what has been said above,
it must now be clear, that all whom, from the beginning of the world, God
adopted as his peculiar people, were taken into covenant with him on the
same conditions, and under the same bond of doctrine, as ourselves; but
as it is of no small importance to establish this point, I will here add
it by way of appendix, and show, since the Fathers were partakers with
us in the same inheritance, and hoped for a common salvation through the
grace of the same Mediator, how far their condition in this respect was
different from our own. For although the passages which we have collected
from the Law and the Prophets for the purpose of proof, make it plain that
there never was any other rule of piety and religion among the people of
God; yet as many things are written on the subject of the difference between
the Old and New Testaments in a manner which may perplex ordinary readers,
it will be proper here to devote a special place to the better and more
exact discussion of this subject. This discussion, which would have been
most useful at any rate, has been rendered necessary by that monstrous
miscreant, Servetus, and some madmen of the sect of the Anabaptists, who
think of the people of Israel just as they would do of some herd of swine,
absurdly imagining that the Lord gorged them with temporal blessings here,
and gave them no hope of a blessed immortality.228 Let us guard
pious minds against this pestilential error, while we at the same time
remove all the difficulties which are wont to start up when mention is
made of the difference between the Old and the New Testaments. By the way
also, let us consider what resemblance and what difference there is between
the covenant which the Lord made with the Israelites before the advent
of Christ, and that which he has made with us now that Christ is manifested.
2. It is possible,
indeed, to explain both in one word. The covenant made with all the fathers
is so far from differing from ours in reality and substance, that it is
altogether one and the same: still the administration differs. But because
this brief summary is insufficient to give any one a full understanding
of the subject, our explanation to be useful must extend to greater length.
It were superfluous, however, in showing the similarity, or rather identity,
of the two dispensations, again to treat of the particulars which have
already been discussed, as it were unseasonable to introduce those which
are still to be considered elsewhere. What we propose to insist upon here
may be reduced to three heads:--First, That temporal opulence and
felicity was not the goal to which the Jews were invited to aspire, but
that they were admitted to the hope of immortality, and that assurance
of this adoption was given by immediate communications, by the Law and
by the Prophets. Secondly, That the covenant by which they were
reconciled to the Lord was founded on no merits of their own, but solely
on the mercy of God, who called them; and, thirdly, That they both
had and knew Christ the Mediator, by whom they were united to God, and
made capable of receiving his promises. The second of these, as it is not
yet perhaps sufficiently understood, will be fully considered in its own
place (Book 3 chap. 15-18). For we will prove by many clear passages in
the Prophets, that all which the Lord has ever given or promised to his
people is of mere goodness and indulgence. The third also has, in various
places, been not obscurely demonstrated. Even the first has not been left
unnoticed.
3. As the first
is most pertinent to the present subject, and is most controverted, we
shall enter more fully into the consideration of it, taking care, at the
same time, where any of the others requires explanations to supply it by
the way, or afterwards add it in its proper place. The Apostle, indeed,
removes all doubt when he says that the Gospel which God gave concerning
his Son, Jesus Christ, "he had promised aforetime by his prophets in the
holy Scriptures," (Rom. 1:2). And again, that "the righteousness of God
without the law is manifested, being witnessed by the law and the prophets,"
(Rom. 3:21). For the Gospel does not confine the hearts of men to the enjoyment
of the present life, but raises them to the hope of immortality; does not
fix them down to earthly delights, but announcing that there is a treasure
laid up in heaven, carries the heart thither also. For in another place
he thus explains, "After that ye believed [the Gospel,] ye were sealed
with that Holy Spirit of promise, which is the earnest of our inheritance
unto the redemption of the purchased possession," (Eph. 1:13, 14). Again,
"Since we heard of your faith in Christ Jesus, and of the love which ye
have to all the saints, for the hope which is laid up for you in heaven,
whereof ye heard before in the word of the truth of the Gospel," (Col.
1:4). Again, "Whereunto he called you by our Gospel to the obtaining of
the glory of our Lord Jesus Christ," (2 Thess. 2:14). Whence also it is
called the word of salvation and the power of God, with salvation to every
one that believes, and the kingdom of heaven.229 But if the
doctrine of the Gospel is spiritual, and gives access to the possession
of incorruptible life, let us not suppose that those to whom it was promised
and declared altogether neglected the care of the soul, and lived stupidly
like cattle in the enjoyment of bodily pleasures. Let no one here quibble
and say, that the promises concerning the Gospel, which are contained in
the Law and the Prophets, were designed for a new people.230
For Paul, shortly after making that statement concerning the Gospel promised
in the Law, adds, that "whatsoever things the law saith, it saith to those
who are under the law." I admit, indeed, he is there treating of a different
subject, but when he said that every thing contained in the Law was directed
to the Jews, he was not so oblivious as not to remember what he had said
a few verses before of the Gospel promised in the Law. Most clearly, therefore,
does the Apostle demonstrate that the Old Testament had special reference
to the future life, when he says that the promises of the Gospel were comprehended
under it.
4. In the same
way we infer that the Old Testament was both established by the free mercy
of God and confirmed by the intercession of Christ. For the preaching of
the Gospel declares nothing more than that sinners, without any merit of
their own, are justified by the paternal indulgence of God. It is wholly
summed up in Christ. Who, then, will presume to represent the Jews as destitute
of Christ, when we know that they were parties to the Gospel covenant,
which has its only foundation in Christ? Who will presume to make them
aliens to the benefit of gratuitous salvation, when we know that they were
instructed in the doctrine of justification by faith? And not to dwell
on a point which is clear, we have the remarkable saying of our Lord, "Your
father Abraham rejoiced to see my day, and he saw it and was glad," (John
8:56). What Christ here declares of Abraham, an apostle shows to be applicable
to all believers, when he says that Jesus Christ is the "same yesterday,
to-day, and for ever," (Heb. 13:8). For he is not there speaking merely
of the eternal divinity of Christ, but of his power, of which believers
had always full proof. Hence both the blessed Virgin231 and
Zachariah, in their hymns, say that the salvation revealed in Christ was
a fulfilment of the mercy promised "to our fathers, to Abraham, and to
his seed for ever," (Luke 1:55, 72). If, by manifesting Christ, the Lord
fulfilled his ancient oath, it cannot be denied that the subject of that
oath232 must ever have been Christ and eternal life.
5. Nay, the Apostle
makes the Israelites our equals, not only in the grace of the covenant,
but also in the signification of the Sacraments. For employing the example
of those punishments, which the Scripture states to have been of old inflicted
on the Jews, in order to deter the Corinthians from falling into similar
wickedness, he begins with premising that they have no ground to claim
for themselves any privilege which can exempt them from the divine vengeance
which overtook the Jews, since the Lord not only visited them with the
same mercies, but also distinguished his grace among them by the same symbols:
as if he had said, If you think you are out of danger, because the Baptism
which you received, and the Supper of which you daily partake, have excellent
promises, and if, in the meantime, despising the goodness of God, you indulge
in licentiousness, know that the Jews, on whom the Lord inflicted his severest
judgments, possessed similar symbols. They were baptised in passing through
the sea, and in the cloud which protected them from the burning heat of
the sun. It is said, that this passage was a carnal baptism, corresponding
in some degree to our spiritual baptism. But if so, there would be a want
of conclusiveness in the argument of the Apostle, whose object is to prevent
Christians from imagining that they excelled the Jews in the matter of
baptism. Besides, the cavil cannot apply to what immediately follows--viz.
that they did "all eat the same spiritual meat; and did all drink the same
spiritual drink: for they drank of that spiritual Rock that followed them:
and that Rock was Christ," (1 Cor. 10:3, 4).
6. To take off
the force of this passage of Paul, an objection is founded on the words
of our Saviour, "Your fathers did eat manna in the wilderness, and are
dead." "If any man eat of this bread, he shall live for ever," (John 6:49,
51). There is no difficulty in reconciling the two passages. The Lord,
as he was addressing hearers who only desired to be filled with earthly
food, while they cared not for the true food of the soul, in some degree
adapts his speech to their capacity, and, in particular, to meet their
carnal view, draws a comparison between manna and his own body. They called
upon him to prove his authority by performing some miracle, such as Moses
performed in the wilderness when he obtained manna from heaven. In this
manna they saw nothing but a relief of the bodily hunger from which the
people were then suffering; they did not penetrate to the sublimer mystery
to which Paul refers. Christ, therefore, to demonstrate that the blessing
which they ought to expect from him was more excellent than the lauded
one which Moses had bestowed upon their fathers, draws this comparison:
If, in your opinion, it was a great and memorable miracle when the Lord,
by Moses, supplied his people with heavenly food that they might be supported
for a season, and not perish in the wilderness from famine; from this infer
how much more excellent is the food which bestows immortality. We see why
our Lord omitted to mention what was of principal virtue in the manna,
and mentioned only its meanest use. Since the Jews had, as it were by way
of upb